Selected quad for the lemma: church_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
church_n officer_n ordain_v ordination_n 3,414 5 11.2484 5 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A53662 Tutamen evangelicum, or, A defence of Scripture-ordination, against the exceptions of T.G. in a book intituled, Tentamen novum proving, that ordination by presbyters is valid, Timothy and Titus were no diocesan rulers, the presbyters of Ephesus were the apostles successors in the government of that church, and not Timothy, the first epistle to Timothy was written before the meeting at Miletus, the ancient Waldenses had no diocesan bishops, &c./ by the author of the Plea for Scripture-ordination. Owen, James, 1654-1706. 1697 (1697) Wing O710; ESTC R9488 123,295 224

There are 27 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

presbyterian_o rule_v elder_n who_o he_o vindicate_v by_o his_o kind_a paraphrase_n have_v this_o gentleman_n be_v retain_v by_o they_o he_o can_v not_o better_o have_v plead_v their_o cause_n and_o although_o the_o elder_n 130._o p._n 130._o proceed_v he_o receive_v a_o commission_n from_o st._n paul_n and_o peter_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d act_n 20.28_o 1_o pet._n 5.1_o 2._o will_n it_o thence_o follow_v that_o there_o be_v none_o to_o overrule_a they_o or_o do_v it_o hence_o appear_v that_o these_o elder_n have_v power_n to_o ordain_v 1._o it_o hence_o follow_v they_o be_v real_a bishop_n as_o he_o have_v confess_v and_o if_o ordination_n be_v a_o branch_n of_o episcopal_a power_n as_o he_o say_v it_o be_v these_o elder_n have_v power_n to_o ordain_v 2._o it_o hence_o follow_v that_o these_o presbyter_n be_v the_o supreme_a ordinary_a church-ruler_n if_o bishop_n be_v such_o the_o extraordinary_a superior_a ruler_n be_v temporary_a he_o dare_v almost_o swear_v it_o ibid._n ibid._n that_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d imply_v not_o the_o ordain_v power_n very_o say_v he_o if_o this_o be_v so_o every_o believer_n have_v the_o same_o power_n for_o they_o be_v bid_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d to_o play_v the_o bishop_n or_o as_o we_o translate_v it_o to_o look_v diligent_o lest_o any_o man_n fail_v of_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n heb._n 12.15_o be_v all_o believer_n bid_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d to_o look_v diligent_o to_o the_o flock_n as_o the_o pastor_n of_o it_o if_o they_o be_v not_o this_o allegation_n be_v impertinent_a he_o say_v the_o ordinary_a elder_n have_v not_o the_o supreme_a authority_n over_o the_o church_n ibid._n ibid._n after_o the_o time_n we_o have_v assign_v nor_o do_v they_o ever_o ordain_v elder_n this_o imply_v that_o the_o ordinary_a elder_n have_v the_o supreme_a authority_n before_o the_o time_n he_o assign_v and_o it_o be_v certain_a the_o elder_n of_o ephesus_n have_v it_o in_o act_n 20.28_o he_o can_v prove_v they_o be_v ever_o deprive_v of_o it_o we_o have_v prove_v that_o they_o have_v the_o supreme_a authority_n after_o the_o write_n of_o the_o epistle_n to_o timothy_n and_o titus_n we_o have_v also_o prove_v out_o of_o act_n 13.1_o 2._o and_o 1_o tim._n 4.14_o that_o ordinary_a elder_n do_v ordain_v and_o have_v vindicated_n those_o text_n from_o his_o corrupt_a gloss_n j._n o._n observe_v that_o the_o apostle_n do_v not_o mention_v superior_a bishop_n in_o his_o catalogue_n of_o gospel-minister_n ibid._n ibid._n eph._n 4.11_o mr._n g._n assign_v this_o for_o a_o reason_n bishop_n as_o a_o distinct_a species_n of_o church-officer_n be_v not_o as_o yet_o establish_v the_o itenerant_a or_o unfixed_a evangelist_n govern_v the_o church_n under_o the_o apostle_n and_o ordain_v elder_n for_o '_o they_o 1._o here_o be_v a_o fair_a confession_n there_o be_v no_o bishop_n in_o the_o christian_a church_n when_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o ephesian_n be_v write_v which_o be_v in_o paul_n first_o bond_n at_o rome_n we_o have_v prove_v that_o the_o first_o epistle_n to_o timothy_n be_v write_v before_o his_o first_o bond_n and_o so_o timothy_n can_v be_v no_o bishop_n of_o ephesus_n 2._o the_o church_n of_o ephesus_n be_v govern_v by_o presbyter_n act_n 20.28_o without_o either_o evangelist_n or_o apostle_n to_o oversee_v they_o that_o we_o read_v of_o the_o apostle_n commit_v the_o flock_n whole_o and_o sole_o to_o they_o when_o he_o part_v with_o they_o have_v no_o thought_n of_o ever_o see_v they_o again_o v._o 25._o 3._o he_o grant_v that_o evangelist_n be_v unfixed_a officer_n under_o the_o apostle_n and_o ordain_v elder_n as_o such_o timothy_n and_o titus_n may_v ordain_v elder_n in_o ephesus_n and_o crete_n as_o unfixed_a evangelist_n for_o such_o they_o be_v after_o the_o epistle_n write_v to_o they_o 2_o tim._n 4.9_o 21._o tit._n 3.12_o 2_o tim._n 4.10_o therefore_o those_o epistle_n do_v not_o make_v they_o fix_v governor_n as_o he_o suppose_v j._n o._n take_v notice_n that_o the_o papist_n urge_v the_o instance_n of_o timothy_n and_o titus_n for_o superior_a bishop_n against_o the_o protestant_n and_o that_o the_o bishop_n best_a argument_n have_v be_v dextrous_o manage_v against_o the_o whole_a reformation_n what_o can_v the_o rector_n say_v to_o this_o matter_n of_o fact_n be_v so_o plain_a that_o he_o can_v deny_v it_o and_o therefore_o endeavour_v to_o palliate_v it_o as_o well_o as_o he_o can_v j._n o._n say_v he_o in_o this_o very_a book_n have_v make_v use_n of_o the_o popish_a schoolman_n 131._o p._n 131._o p._n 55._o 107._o and_o therefore_o i_o can_v avoid_v tax_v he_o with_o great_a insincerity_n and_o partiality_n the_o rector_n invention_n run_v low_a that_o he_o can_v find_v nothing_o but_o the_o old_a dull_a threadbare_a charge_n of_o insincerity_n which_o we_o have_v have_v over_o and_o over_o but_o the_o comfort_n of_o it_o be_v his_o tongue_n be_v no_o slander_n all_o the_o difference_n between_o j._n oh_o argument_n out_o of_o the_o popish_a doctor_n and_o mr._n g's_o argument_n out_o of_o they_o be_v this_o 1._o he_o tread_v in_o their_o step_n without_o once_o name_v they_o j._n o._n name_n they_o all_o along_o when_o he_o make_v use_v of_o they_o 2._o j._n o._n quote_v the_o popish_a doctor_n against_o themselves_o and_o for_o the_o reform_a church_n who_o most_o of_o they_o have_v no_o bishop_n and_o all_o will_v allow_v that_o the_o testimony_n of_o a_o adversary_n be_v good_a against_o himself_o mr._n g._n improve_v their_o argument_n against_o the_o reform_a church_n who_o they_o and_o he_o condemn_v as_o no_o church_n for_o want_v of_o ordain_v bishop_n the_o rector_n be_v too_o cunning_a to_o deliver_v thc_a conclusion_n in_o express_a word_n but_o he_o lay_v down_o and_o endeavour_n to_o establish_v those_o premise_n that_o necessary_o infer_v this_o conclusion_n that_o popish_a ordination_n be_v valid_a and_o that_o all_o the_o ordination_n of_o the_o reform_a church_n except_o those_o in_o england_n and_o ireland_n by_o bishop_n be_v a_o nullity_n this_o be_v the_o design_n of_o his_o book_n in_o which_o he_o pretend_v to_o prove_v that_o no_o ordinary_a presbyter_n have_v power_n to_o ordain_v and_o that_o no_o instance_n can_v be_v give_v in_o all_o the_o new_a testament_n of_o any_o ordain_v presbyter_n and_o that_o bishop_n be_v superior_a to_o presbyter_n by_o a_o divine_a right_n the_o truth_n be_v the_o performance_n be_v as_o weak_a as_o the_o undertake_n be_v bold_a i_o leave_v it_o to_o the_o reader_n to_o judge_n who_o be_v to_o be_v charge_v with_o insincerity_n one_o that_o defend_v the_o reform_a church_n against_o the_o popish_a writer_n though_o he_o quote_v they_o sometime_o against_o themselves_o or_o one_o who_o under_o the_o name_n of_o a_o protestant_n join_v with_o the_o popish_a church_n and_o doctor_n in_o destroy_v the_o ministry_n of_o the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o protestant_a reform_a church_n since_o we_o like_v not_o popish_a argument_n 132._o p._n 132._o one_o thing_n he_o will_v be_v bold_a to_o tell_v j._n o._n that_o he_o will_v here_o meet_v with_o a_o argument_n borrow_v from_o bishop_n pearson_n which_o he_o think_v neither_o any_o papist_n nor_o j._n o._n himself_o ever_o think_v of_o before_o who_o so_o bold_a as_o blind_a bayard_n this_o man_n bold_o tell_v we_o that_o no_o papist_n ever_o think_v of_o bishop_n pearson_n argument_n draw_v from_o the_o time_n of_o write_v the_o epistle_n to_o timothy_n etc._n etc._n i_o show_v before_o that_o the_o seminary_n at_o rheims_n think_v of_o the_o bishop_n argument_n before_o he_o be_v bear_v the_o rector_n have_v a_o great_a many_o quality_n that_o be_v very_o singular_a this_o among_o other_o that_o when_o he_o be_v remote_a from_o truth_n he_o be_v then_o most_o confident_a he_o think_v j._n o._n never_o think_v of_o this_o argument_n before_o his_o memory_n be_v as_o defective_a as_o his_o read_n j._n o._n tell_v he_o before_o his_o book_n be_v talk_v of_o that_o he_o have_v think_v of_o this_o argument_n and_o have_v prepare_v a_o dissertation_n to_o vindicate_v the_o old_a chronology_n some_o gentleman_n that_o be_v then_o present_a may_v relieve_v his_o memory_n if_o need_v he_o j._n o._n argue_v that_o those_o word_n lay_v hand_n sudden_o on_o no_o man_n do_v not_o prove_v the_o sole_a power_n of_o ordination_n in_o timothy_n to_o this_o he_o answer_v it_o ought_v to_o be_v hence_o conclude_v that_o the_o sole_a power_n of_o ordination_n be_v in_o timothy_n 133._o p._n 133._o till_o j._n o._n can_v produce_v a_o like_a commission_n give_v to_o the_o presbyter_n that_o have_v be_v prove_v from_o act_n 13.1_o 2._o 1_o tim._n 4.14_o he_o add_v j._n oh_o reason_n be_v a_o very_a pleasant_a one_o it_o may_v as_o well_o follow_v say_v j._n o._n that_o the_o sole_a power_n of_o teach_v belong_v
tutamen_fw-la evangelicum_fw-la or_o a_o defence_n of_o scripture-ordination_a against_o the_o exception_n of_o t._n g._n in_o a_o book_n entitle_v tentamen_fw-la novum_n prove_v that_o ordination_n by_o presbyter_n be_v valid_a timothy_n and_o titus_n be_v no_o diocesan_n ruler_n the_o presbyter_n of_o ephesus_n be_v the_o apostle_n successor_n in_o the_o government_n of_o that_o church_n and_o not_o timothy_n the_o first_o epistle_n to_o timothy_n be_v write_v before_o the_o meeting_n at_o miletus_n the_o ancient_n waldenses_n have_v no_o diocesan_n bishop_n etc._n etc._n by_o the_o author_n of_o the_o plea_n for_o scripture-ordination_a confirmatio_fw-la juvenum_fw-la clericorum_fw-la ordinatio_fw-la locorum_fw-la consecratio_fw-la reservatur_fw-la papae_fw-la &_o episcopis_fw-la propter_fw-la cupiditatem_fw-la lucri_fw-la temporalis_fw-la &_o honoris_fw-la art_n 28._o doctr._fw-la joh._n wiclef_n in_o conc._n constantiens_fw-la london_n print_v for_o zachary_n whitworth_n bookseller_n in_o manchester_n 1697._o the_o preface_n j._n o._n publish_a some_o year_n since_o a_o plea_n for_o scripture-ordination_a prove_v by_o scripture_n and_o antiquity_n that_o ordination_n by_o presbyter_n without_o bishop_n be_v valid_a several_a hand_n be_v say_v to_o be_v at_o work_n prepare_v remark_n upon_o it_o at_o length_n after_o near_o three_o year_n silence_n come_v forth_o a_o sort_n of_o answer_n by_o one_o mr._n t._n g._n rector_n of_o b._n in_o lancashire_n a_o author_n well_o know_v in_o his_o country_n by_o some_o prerogative_n sermon_n which_o he_o print_v some_o year_n since_o i._o he_o front_n his_o english_a book_n with_o a_o latin_a title_n and_o call_v it_o tentamen_fw-la novum_n that_o be_v a_o new_a trial_n of_o skill_n here_o be_v a_o implicit_a confession_n of_o a_o baffle_a cause_n he_o dare_v not_o trust_v to_o the_o old_a argument_n for_o episcopacy_n but_o be_v glad_a to_o betake_v himself_o to_o new_a shift_n it_o be_v a_o desperate_a cause_n that_o needs_o new_a art_n to_o support_v it_o the_o plain_a english_a of_o tentamen_n novum_n be_v this_o gentleman_n i_o be_o very_o sensible_a the_o cause_n i_o plead_v for_o can_v stand_v on_o its_o old_a foundation_n therefore_o i_o will_v make_v a_o new_a effort_n and_o try_v whether_o the_o lofty_a fabric_n of_o diocesan_n episcopacy_n may_v not_o be_v support_v on_o the_o slender_n and_o nice_a foundation_n of_o a_o new_a point_n of_o chronology_n if_o this_o fail_v the_o cause_n be_v lose_v however_o his_o title_n look_v a_o little_a modest_a but_o a_o man_n of_o assurance_n can_v be_v long_o conceal_v under_o a_o vizard_n for_o in_o the_o very_a next_o word_n he_o call_v his_o argument_n a_o demonstration_n for_o thus_o his_o title-page_n run_v tentamen_fw-la novum_n prove_v that_o timothy_n and_o titus_n be_v diocesan_n ruler_n by_o a_o argument_n draw_v frhm_fw-ge the_o time_n of_o st._n paul_n be_v beseech_v timothy_n to_o abide_v at_o ephesus_n and_z leaving_z titus_n at_o crete_n as_o it_o be_v demonstrate_v by_o bishop_n pearson_n a_o doubtful_a attempt_n and_o a_o confident_a demonstration_n be_v something_o inconsistent_a but_o i_o have_v be_v so_o kind_a to_o he_o as_o to_o reconcile_v the_o title-page_n to_o the_o title_n of_o his_o book_n by_o prove_v his_o suppose_a demonstration_n to_o be_v only_o a_o tentamen_n novum_n a_o new_a and_o fruitless_a attempt_n to_o defend_v a_o un-scriptural_a hierarchy_n this_o the_o reader_n way_n find_v in_o the_o three_o and_o four_o chapter_n of_o this_o book_n ii_o i_o desire_v the_o reader_n to_o observe_v that_o there_o be_v but_o one_o chapter_n chap._n v._n in_o the_o rector_n book_n which_o he_o call_v a_o answer_n to_o j._n oh_o plea_n and_o in_o that_o he_o brief_o touch_v upon_o two_o or_o three_o of_o ten_o argument_n which_o j._n o._n have_v urge_v for_o ordination_n by_o presbyter_n this_o be_v tentamen_fw-la novum_n a_o new_a way_n of_o answer_v book_n he_o pretend_v to_o answer_v j._n oh_o plea_n for_o scripture-ordination_a which_o be_v the_o running-title_n of_o the_o whole_a book_n and_o so_o will_v persuade_v his_o reader_n that_o he_o have_v answer_v the_o whole_a i_o will_v not_o impeach_v his_o candour_n in_o this_o form_n of_o speech_n which_o show_v his_o skill_n in_o a_o rhetorical_a figure_n that_o substitute_n a_o part_n for_o the_o whole_a as_o if_o a_o vainglorious_a captain_n who_o have_v attack_v a_o company_n or_o two_o shall_v say_v by_o a_o romantic_a syneedoche_n he_o have_v beat_v a_o army_n iii_o the_o design_n of_o his_o book_n be_v to_o prove_v that_o mere_a presbyter_n have_v no_o inherent_a power_n of_o ordination_n and_o that_o all_o ordination_n by_o presbyter_n be_v a_o nullity_n this_o notion_n be_v very_o singular_a and_o i_o hope_n have_v but_o few_o patron_n in_o the_o church_n of_o england_n because_o 1._o it_o vn-churche_n all_o the_o reform_a church_n beyond_o sea_n who_o have_v no_o bishop_n of_o the_o english_a species_n and_o by_o this_o gentleman_n principle_n no_o ministry_n no_o sacrament_n and_o consequent_o no_o salvation_n he_o own_v a_o true_a ministry_n in_o the_o popish_a church_n and_o overthrow_v the_o ministry_n of_o the_o reform_a church_n his_o neighbour_n of_o the_o romish_a communion_n be_v oblige_v to_o con_v he_o thanks_o for_o the_o service_n he_o will_v have_v do_v to_o their_o cause_n against_o the_o reform_a interest_n to_o say_v they_o be_v a_o case_n of_o necessity_n but_o so_o be_v not_o we_o be_v to_o triste_fw-fr as_o j._n o._n have_v prove_v in_o his_o book_n but_o mr._n g._n wise_o pass_v over_o that_o chapter_n as_o if_o it_o be_v not_o there_o 2._o this_o uncharitable_a hypothesis_n contradict_v the_o moderate_a and_o learned_a defender_n of_o episcopacy_n who_o general_o grant_v the_o validity_n of_o ordination_n by_o presbyter_n though_o they_o judge_v it_o irregular_a where_o bishop_n may_v be_v have_v mr._n hooker_n allow_v the_o ordination_n of_o presbyter_n alone_o on_o this_o principle_n that_o the_o church_n can_v give_v they_o power_n for_o according_a to_o he_o all_o power_n be_v original_o in_o the_o whole_a body_n eccl._n polit._n vii_o p._n 37_o 38._o bishop_n downame_n grant_v that_o extraordinary_o in_o case_n of_o necessity_n presbyter_n may_v ordain_v without_o bishop_n and_o give_v this_o reason_n for_o the_o validity_n of_o their_o ordination_n because_o imposition_n of_o hand_n in_o confirmation_n and_o reconciliation_n of_o penitent_n be_v reserve_v to_o bishop_n as_o well_o as_o ordination_n and_o yet_o in_o the_o absence_n of_o bishop_n may_v be_v do_v by_o presbyter_n def._n of_o his_o cons_n serm._n iii_o 3._o p._n 69_o 108._o forbes_n acknowledge_v that_o jure_fw-la divino_fw-la presbyter_n have_v the_o power_n of_o ordain_v as_o well_o as_o of_o i_o reach_v and_o baptise_v though_o they_o must_v use_v it_o under_o the_o bishop_n inspection_n in_o those_o place_n that_o have_v bishop_n iren._n p._n 164._o the_o same_o be_v the_o judgement_n of_o archbishop_n usher_n see_v his_o life_n and_o reduct_v by_o dr._n bernard_n the_o archbishop_n of_o spalleto_n speak_v to_o the_o same_o purpose_n de_fw-fr rep._n eccles_n in_o several_a place_n he_o say_v that_o the_o presbyterial_a order_n have_v always_o the_o key_n annex_v and_o that_o when_o any_o be_v ordain_v presbyter_n the_o key_n be_v give_v he_o and_o jurisdiction_n with_o order_n by_o divine_a right_n lib._n v._o cap._n 12._o p._n 473._o 3._o this_o hypothesis_n condemn_v the_o very_a church_n of_o england_n who_o in_o her_o article_n compose_v by_o the_o arch-bishop_n bishop_n and_o the_o clergy_n in_o convocation_n and_o confirm_v by_o parliament_n 13._o eliz._n 12._o allow_v the_o ordination_n of_o the_o reform_a church_n beyond_o sea_n which_o be_v by_o presbyter_n art_n 23._o those_o we_o ought_v to_o judge_n lawful_o call_v and_o send_v which_o be_v choose_v and_o call_v to_o this_o work_n by_o man_n who_o have_v public_a authority_n give_v unto_o they_o in_o the_o congregation_n to_o call_v and_o send_v minister_n into_o the_o lord_n vineyard_n 5._o vineyard_n vid._n rog._n in_o prop._n 5._o the_o article_n do_v not_o say_v none_o be_v lawful_o call_v but_o by_o bishop_n but_o that_o minister_n ought_v to_o be_v call_v by_o man_n who_o have_v public_a authority_n give_v unto_o they_o in_o the_o congregation_n which_o ordain_v presbyter_n may_v have_v and_o actual_o have_v in_o the_o foreign_a reform_a congregation_n the_o church_n of_o england_n acknowledge_v ordination_n by_o presbyter_n and_o look_v upon_o superior_a bishop_n to_o be_v but_o a_o prudential_a constitution_n of_o the_o civil_a magistrate_n as_o j._n o._n have_v prove_v at_o large_a in_o his_o book_n cap._n ix_o which_o mr._n g._n also_o prudent_o overlook_v we_o may_v presume_v he_o have_v good_a reason_n for_o his_o omission_n the_o ordination_n of_o foreign_a church_n be_v not_o question_v here_o before_o bishop_n laud'_v time_n my_o lord_n bacon_n complain_v of_o it_o as_o a_o new_a thing_n and_o uncommon_a
do_v he_o mean_v that_o some_o of_o they_o have_v strong_a presumption_n other_o have_v moral_a assurance_n of_o the_o succession_n or_o rather_o that_o their_o moral_a assurance_n be_v no_o more_o than_o a_o strong_a presumption_n and_o so_o the_o meaning_n be_v they_o strong_o presume_v they_o be_v minister_n but_o can_v be_v certain_a upon_o this_o principle_n this_o be_v but_o very_o cold_a comfort_n to_o one_o who_o labour_v under_o fear_n and_o temptation_n about_o his_o acceptance_n with_o god_n in_o the_o exercise_n of_o his_o ministry_n the_o inextricable_a difficulty_n about_o the_o succession_n which_o have_v puzzle_v the_o most_o learned_a and_o diligent_a inquirer_n may_v increase_v but_o can_v have_v no_o tendency_n to_o remove_v his_o doubt_n the_o waldenses_n prove_v their_o call_n to_o the_o ministry_n by_o the_o success_n 234._o act_n &_o mon._n p._n 234._o and_o not_o by_o the_o suecession_n of_o it_o as_o we_o note_v before_o and_o instead_o of_o perplex_v their_o head_n with_o a_o uninterrupted_a succession_n they_o assert_v this_o position_n such_o as_o hear_v or_o obey_v the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o have_v a_o right_a faith_n be_v the_o right_a church_n of_o christ_n and_o to_o this_o church_n the_o key_n of_o the_o church_n be_v give_v to_o drive_v away_o wolf_n and_o to_o institute_v true_a pastor_n nor_o be_v they_o singular_a in_o this_o principle_n it_o be_v assert_v by_o the_o learned_a defender_n of_o the_o reformation_n in_o their_o discourse_n against_o the_o jesuit_n the_o stiff_a maintainer_n of_o this_o succession_n and_o they_o have_v demonstrate_v that_o the_o be_v of_o the_o christian_a church_n can_v depend_v upon_o this_o succession_n and_o that_o it_o have_v be_v interrupt_v again_o and_o again_o there_o may_v be_v a_o sort_n of_o succession_n without_o a_o true_a church_n as_o in_o the_o romish_a false_a church_n there_o may_v be_v a_o true_a church_n without_o a_o succession_n as_o the_o foreign_a reform_a church_n 38._o eccl._n polit._n lib._n vii_o p._n 37_o 38._o mr._n hooker_n affirm_v the_o whole_a church_n visible_a the_o true_a original_a subject_n of_o all_o power_n and_o thence_o infer_v that_o a_o continue_a succession_n of_o bishop_n be_v not_o necessary_a to_o ordination_n this_o strong_o presumptuous_a gentleman_n shall_v have_v answer_v j._n oh_o reasins_z against_o this_o succession_n before_o he_o have_v talk_v of_o his_o moral_a assurance_n concern_v it_o but_o some_o people_n be_v never_o more_o sure_a than_o when_o they_o be_v further_a from_o truth_n thus_o i_o have_v follow_v he_o through_o his_o tedious_a preface_n let_v not_o the_o reader_n blame_v i_o for_o want_n of_o method_n in_o some_o place_n because_o i_o follow_v the_o author_n in_o his_o digression_n chap._n ii_o the_o jewish_a church_n not_o the_o first_o establish_v church_n the_o levitical_a priesthood_n no_o pattern_n for_o gospel_n minister_n clemens_n romanus_n vindicated_n whether_o jesus_n christ_n model_v his_o church_n after_o the_o jewish_a pattern_n or_o leave_v it_o in_o a_o state_n of_o oligarchy_n as_o our_o author_n say_v his_o 1._o instance_n of_o ordination_n from_o act_n 1._o consider_v 2._o the_o ordination_n of_o the_o seven_o deacon_n they_o be_v minister_n of_o table_n not_o of_o the_o word_n and_o sacrament_n prove_v from_o scripture_n and_o antiquity_n objection_n answer_v 3_o his_o three_o instance_n of_o ordination_n from_o act._n 9.17_o consider_v 4._o his_o four_o from_o act_n 13.1_o 2_o 3._o this_o instance_n of_o ordination_n by_o presbyter_n vindicate_v his_o account_n of_o apostle_n and_o prophet_n examine_v 5._o his_o instance_n from_o act_n 14.13_o examine_v 6._o act_n 19.6_o 7._o consider_v 7._o 1_o cor._n 5.3_o 4_o 5._o vindicate_v 8._o 1_o tim._n 4.14_o for_o ordination_n by_o presbyter_n vindicate_v dr._n owen_n defend_v the_o rector_n unsound_a in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o justification_n 9_o 1_o pet._n 5.2_o vindicate_v he_o take_v a_o great_a deal_n of_o pain_n to_o prove_v that_o the_o apostle_n be_v superior_a to_o presbyter_n which_o no_o body_n ever_o deny_v this_o be_v the_o chief_a scope_n of_o the_o first_o chapter_n of_o his_o book_n in_o which_o he_o have_v furnish_v we_o with_o some_o rare_a notion_n of_o church_n government_n he_o tell_v we_o 1._o p._n 1._o that_o the_o church_n of_o the_o jew_n be_v the_o first_o establish_v church_n in_o the_o world_n that_o we_o know_v of_o have_v god_n no_o church_n in_o the_o world_n for_o about_o 24.50_o year_n till_o the_o law_n be_v give_v upon_o mount_n sinai_n be_v there_o no_o worship_a congregation_n no_o divine_a law_n of_o worship_n in_o the_o world_n before_o moses_n time_n we_o read_v of_o sacrifice_n and_o invocation_n on_o the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n gen._n 4.3_o 4_o 24._o and_o be_v there_o no_o assembly_n for_o those_o act_n of_o worship_n we_o read_v of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n as_o distinct_a from_o the_o daughter_n of_o man_n and_o that_o the_o mixture_n of_o the_o profess_o holy_a seed_n of_o seth_n with_o the_o profane_a gainites_n sill_v the_o world_n with_o wickedness_n gen._n 6._o the_o degeneracy_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n the_o visible_a church_n of_o god_n at_o that_o time_n cause_v the_o flood_n he_o that_o can_v believe_v that_o god_n have_v no_o church_n before_o the_o flood_n may_v also_o believe_v there_o never_o be_v a_o flood_n do_v noah_n the_o father_n of_o the_o new_a world_n who_o have_v immediate_a rcvelation_n from_o god_n as_o most_o of_o the_o patriarch_n have_v establish_v no_o church_n among_o his_o numerous_a posterity_n be_v god_n indifferent_a whether_o he_o will_v have_v a_o church_n or_o be_v noah_n unfaithful_a in_o transmit_v the_o divine_a establishment_n to_o his_o offspring_n it_o be_v true_a they_o soon_o degenerate_v gen._n 11._o but_o that_o be_v a_o argument_n they_o have_v be_v a_o covenant-people_n be_v there_o no_o church_n establish_v in_o abrabam_n numerous_a and_o princely_a family_n gen._n 14.14_o &_o 23.6_o he_o erect_v altar_n for_o sacrifice_n and_o call_v upon_o the_o lord_n wherever_o he_o come_v god_n renew_v his_o covenant_n with_o he_o and_o admit_v his_o infant_n seed_n by_o circumcision_n into_o a_o visible_a church-membership_a whereby_o they_o be_v distinguish_v from_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o world_n do_v righteous_a melchizedeck_v king_n of_o salem_n who_o be_v priest_n of_o the_o most_o high_a god_n as_o the_o patriarch_n general_o be_v take_v no_o care_n to_o establish_v a_o church_n among_o his_o subject_n i_o hope_v one_o may_v lawful_o doubt_v this_o gentleman_n notion_n of_o church-government_n who_o thus_o blunder_v about_o the_o very_a existence_n of_o a_o church_n but_o continue_v he_o 1._o p_o 1._o the_o jewish_a church_n be_v govern_v by_o a_o highpriest_n inferior_a priest_n and_o levite_n 1._o i_o begin_v now_o to_o suspect_v the_o reason_n why_o he_o will_v have_v no_o establish_a church_n before_o the_o jewish_a he_o do_v not_o read_v of_o any_o subordinate_a priest_n and_o levite_n that_o be_v subject_a to_o the_o patriarchal_a priest_n he_o seem_v to_o be_v content_a that_o god_n shall_v have_v no_o church_n in_o the_o world_n for_o almost_o 2500_o year_n rather_o than_o want_v a_o model_n for_o his_o hierarchy_n consist_v of_o bishop_n priest_n and_o deacon_n this_o be_v agreeable_a enough_o to_o his_o hypothesis_n that_o diocesan_n bishop_n be_v essential_a to_o a_o church_n 2._o the_o highpriest_n priest_n and_o levite_n be_v not_o the_o model_n for_o gospel_n church_n for_o we_o read_v of_o no_o institution_n of_o bishop_n priest_n and_o deacon_n in_o the_o new_a testament_n we_o find_v bishop_n and_o deacon_n there_o phil._n 1.1_o but_o the_o scripture-bishop_n be_v the_o same_o with_o the_o scripture-presbyter_n 3._o the_o jewish_a highpriest_n be_v a_o eminent_a type_n of_o jesus_n christ_n the_o highpriest_n of_o our_o profession_n he_o be_v one_o as_o the_o jewish_a highpriest_n be_v and_o in_o this_o respect_n we_o follow_v the_o jewish_a typical_a precedent_n woe_n be_v under_o jesus_n christ_n our_o only_a chief-priest_n who_o have_v appoint_v presbyter_n and_o deacon_n as_o under_o officer_n in_o the_o christian_a church_n 4._o this_o be_v the_o great_a argument_n of_o the_o papist_n for_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n the_o jew_n have_v one_o chief-priest_n therefore_o the_o christian_n must_v have_v one_o chief-bishop_n so_o bellarmine_n argue_v 9_o de_fw-fr rom._n pontif._n i._n 9_o it_o be_v unhappy_a that_o the_o argument_n for_o diocesan_n episcopacy_n equal_o serve_v the_o papacy_n the_o father_n especial_o clemens_n romanus_n say_v the_o rector_n seem_v to_o make_v this_o a_o precedent_n for_o the_o government_n of_o christian_a church_n by_o a_o bishop_n presbyter_n and_o deacon_n ibid._n ibid._n the_o first_o answer_v the_o high_a priest_n the_o second_o the_o inferior_a priest_n and_o the_o three_o the_o levite_n either_o the_o rector_n have_v never_o read_v clemens_n romanus_n or_o
he_o disingenuous_o abuse_v his_o reader_n for_o 1._o clemens_n no_o where_o say_v as_o he_o make_v he_o to_o speak_v that_o there_o be_v bishop_n priest_n and_o deacon_n as_o three_o distinct_a officer_n in_o the_o christian_a church_n 2._o he_o no_o where_o say_v that_o the_o bishop_n answer_v the_o high_a priest_n the_o presbyter_n the_o inferior_a priest_n and_o the_o deacon_n the_o levite_n there_o be_v not_o a_o word_n of_o this_o in_o all_o that_o epistle_n to_o the_o corinthian_n to_o which_o mr._n g._n refer_v we_o 3._o he_o mention_n but_o two_o order_n of_o new_a testament_n officer_n bishop_n and_o deacon_n the_o apostle_n say_v he_o preach_v the_o gospel_n in_o country_n and_o city_n ordain_v the_o first_o fruit_n of_o they_o that_o believe_v have_v try_v they_o by_o the_o spirit_n to_o he_o bishop_n and_o deacon_n for_o they_o that_o shall_v afterward_o believe_v cor._n believe_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d clem._n ad_fw-la cor._n the_o same_o officer_n be_v in_o the_o church_n of_o corinth_n at_o this_o time_n which_o the_o apostle_n have_v settle_v in_o the_o church_n of_o philippi_n phil._n 1.1_o bishop_n and_o deacon_n there_o be_v several_a bishop_n in_o the_o single_a church_n of_o philippi_n and_o not_o one_o chief_a so_o in_o this_o church_n of_o corinth_n which_o be_v govern_v by_o several_a bishop_n who_o clemens_n call_v presbyter_n these_o govern_v the_o church_n in_o common_a he_o do_v not_o mention_v any_o chief_a bishop_n in_o corinth_n but_o he_o affirm_v that_o the_o presbyter_n there_o perform_v the_o duty_n of_o their_o episcopacy_n 〈◊〉_d episcopacy_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d he_o exhort_v the_o corinthian_n to_o be_v subject_a to_o their_o elder_n 〈◊〉_d elder_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d i_o can_v wish_v this_o excellent_a epistle_n of_o clemens_n which_o i_o hear_v be_v late_o do_v into_o english_a be_v in_o every_o hand_n it_o will_v abundant_o satisfy_v the_o unprejudiced_a that_o the_o order_n of_o superior_a bishop_n have_v no_o be_v in_o the_o church_n in_o clemens_n his_o time_n he_o write_v to_o the_o corinthian_a church_n about_o schism_n and_o that_o occassioned_a by_o some_o of_o their_o presbyter_n but_o have_v not_o one_o word_n of_o obedience_n to_o a_o superior_a diocesan_n bishop_n as_o the_o remedy_n against_o schism_n the_o only_a passage_n that_o give_v the_o least_o umbrage_n to_o a_o diocesan_n episcopacy_n be_v that_o which_o mention_n high-priest_n priest_n and_o levite_n under_o the_o law_n and_o a_o little_a after_o bishop_n and_o deacon_n under_o the_o gospel_n not_o that_o he_o make_v the_o former_a pattern_n of_o the_o latter_a for_o than_o he_o will_v have_v say_v bishop_n priest_n and_o deacon_n as_o the_o rector_n false_o affirm_v he_o do_v but_o he_o express_o say_v the_o apostle_n institute_v bishop_n and_o deacon_n we_o must_v explain_v clemen_n bishop_n and_o deacon_n by_o the_o new_a testament_n and_o not_o by_o the_o old_a for_o he_o speak_v of_o a_o apostolical_a institution_n which_o we_o must_v look_v for_o in_o paul_n epistle_n and_o not_o in_o the_o levitical_a law_n now_o we_o find_v bishop_n and_o deacon_n in_o phil._n 1.1_o 1_o tim._n 3._o paul_n bishop_n and_o clemen_n bishop_n be_v the_o same_o paul_n bishop_n be_v presbyter_n for_o there_o be_v several_a of_o they_o in_o one_o church_n phil._n 1.1_o clemen_n bishop_n be_v but_o presbyter_n of_o which_o there_o be_v several_a in_o the_o church_n of_o corinth_n the_o force_n of_o clemens_n his_o argument_n be_v this_o as_o the_o old_a testament_n church_n be_v guide_v by_o a_o divine_a institution_n in_o the_o levitical_a priesthood_n so_o must_v we_o in_o the_o gospel-ministry_n they_o rest_v in_o the_o order_n of_o the_o old_a law_n and_o we_o must_v in_o those_o of_o the_o new_a testament_n the_o order_n be_v different_a as_o he_o express_o declare_v but_o the_o authority_n enjoin_v they_o be_v the_o same_o that_o we_o must_v thus_o understand_v he_o appear_v further_a from_o these_o word_n of_o he_o 〈◊〉_d he_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d even_o our_o apostle_n understand_v by_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n that_o there_o will_v be_v strife_n about_o the_o name_n of_o episcopacy_n for_o this_o very_a reason_n therefore_o have_v perfect_a knowledge_n thereof_o before_o hand_n they_o ordain_v the_o aforesaid_a officer_n i._n e._n bishop_n and_o deacon_n clement_n observe_v here_o 1._o that_o the_o apostle_n do_v foresee_v there_o will_v be_v contention_n about_o the_o order_n and_o dignity_n of_o bishop_n in_o the_o church_n 2._o that_o they_o take_v care_n to_o accommodate_v the_o difference_n about_o episcopacy_n by_o settle_v officer_n in_o the_o church_n 3._o the_o officer_n they_o settle_v be_v bishop_n and_o deacon_n and_o of_o these_o bishop_n there_o be_v several_a in_o a_o church_n who_o govern_v it_o in_o common_a as_o we_o find_v in_o ephesus_n act_v 20.17_o 28._o and_o at_o philippi_n phil._n 1.1_o and_o here_o at_o corinth_n it_o be_v manifest_a say_v the_o rector_n that_o jesus_n christ_n whilst_o on_o earth_n model_v his_o little_a flock_n 2._o p._n 2._o according_a to_o this_o pattern_n himself_o be_v as_o it_o be_v the_o highpriest_n the_o twelve_o apostle_n his_o second_o and_o the_o seventy_o disciple_n still_o of_o a_o loner_n rank_n this_o be_v speak_v with_o great_a assurance_n it_o be_v manifest_a say_v he_o but_o you_o must_v take_v his_o bare_a word_n for_o proof_n 1._o be_v it_o manifest_a that_o jesus_n christ_n be_v as_o it_o be_v the_o high_a priest_n this_o be_v a_o dangerous_a assertion_n and_o savour_v of_o socinianism_n the_o socinian_o deny_v the_o reality_n of_o christ_n priesthood_n and_o satisfaction_n the_o rector_n make_v he_o but_o as_o it_o be_v high_a priest_n if_o he_o will_v be_v at_o the_o pain_n to_o read_v the_o epistle_n to_o the_o hebrew_n he_o will_v find_v that_o jesus_n christ_n have_v a_o real_a priesthood_n and_o that_o he_o be_v and_o be_v the_o high_a priest_n of_o our_o profession_n i_o hope_v the_o rector_n be_v no_o socinian_n but_o when_o i_o compare_v this_o with_o some_o odd_a passage_n of_o his_o about_o justification_n of_o which_o hereafter_o it_o be_v no_o breach_n of_o charity_n to_o say_v he_o ought_v to_o clear_v himself_o from_o the_o appearance_n of_o that_o grow_a heresy_n they_o that_o be_v sound_a in_o the_o faith_n ought_v to_o study_v a_o form_n of_o sound_a word_n the_o scripture_n no_o where_o call_v jesus_n christ_n as_o it_o be_v a_o high_a priest_n he_o that_o can_v degrade_v jesus_n christ_n from_o the_o honour_n of_o a_o real_a priesthood_n to_o advance_v the_o honourable_a order_n of_o bishop_n be_v but_o as_o it_o be_v a_o friend_n that_o be_v no_o real_a one_o to_o either_o 2._o be_v it_o manifest_a that_o the_o twelve_o apostle_n be_v under_o christ_n as_o the_o priest_n under_o the_o chief_a priest_n that_o they_o be_v under_o he_o none_o question_v but_o not_o as_o priest_n for_o they_o be_v none_o as_o all_o protestant_n confess_v and_o i_o hope_v this_o gentleman_n will_v not_o make_v they_o priest_n in_o a_o popish_a sense_n to_o offer_v up_o the_o idolatrous_a sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n the_o number_n of_o twelve_o have_v no_o relation_n to_o the_o priesthood_n the_o priest_n be_v divide_v into_o twenty_o four_o order_n and_o not_o into_o twelve_o 1_o chron._n 24._o bishop_n andrews_n make_v the_o twelve_o apostle_n to_o answer_v the_o prince_n of_o the_o twelve_o tribe_n 25._o form_n of_o goverr_n p._n 25._o which_o our_o rector_n mistake_v perhaps_o for_o twelve_o priest_n but_o be_v it_o as_o it_o will_v 1.16_o num._n 1.16_o he_o be_v manifest_o mistake_v in_o his_o notion_n of_o the_o apostle_n as_o well_o as_o of_o christ_n 3._o be_v it_o manifest_a that_o the_o seventy_o two_o disciple_n answer_v the_o levite_n bishop_n andrews_n and_o other_o assertor_n of_o episcopacy_n make_v they_o to_o answer_v the_o seventy_o two_o elder_n who_o no_o man_n but_o mr._n g._n will_v affirm_v to_o be_v a_o bench_n of_o inferior_a levite_n 11.16_o num._n 11.16_o the_o great_a council_n of_o seventy_o have_v the_o supreme_a judicature_n under_o moses_n who_o be_v not_o the_o high_a priest_n which_o he_o will_v scarce_o allow_v the_o presbyter_n much_o less_o the_o deacon_n who_o the_o seventy_o disciple_n represent_v according_a to_o his_o parallel_n have_v tell_v we_o how_o christ_n model_v his_o flock_n whilst_o he_o be_v on_o earth_n he_o proceed_v to_o acquaint_v we_o in_o what_o state_n he_o leave_v it_o at_o his_o death_n here_o he_o be_v at_o a_o loss_n what_o to_o say_v and_o yet_o must_v needs_o teach_v his_o reader_n what_o he_o do_v not_o understand_v himself_o he_o seem_v 2._o p._n 2._o say_v he_o to_o leave_v his_o church_n in_o a_o state_n of_o oligarchy_n or_o in_o the_o power_n of_o twelve_o when_o i_o read_v these_o word_n i_o turn_v
this_o scripture_n of_o the_o institution_n of_o deacon_n with_o the_o qualification_n of_o deacon_n in_o 1_o tim._n 3._o and_o it_o will_v appear_v their_o work_n be_v to_o serve_v table_n ability_n or_o aptness_n to_o teach_v be_v not_o mention_v among_o their_o qualification_n as_o it_o be_v in_o those_o of_o a_o bishop_n or_o presbyter_n 1_o tim._n 3.2_o the_o apostle_n mention_n several_a character_n that_o be_v common_a to_o both_o but_o distinguish_v the_o bishop_n from_o the_o deacon_n by_o this_o that_o the_o bishop_n be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d apt_a to_o teach_v which_o be_v not_o require_v in_o the_o deacon_n a_o evidence_n they_o be_v minister_n not_o of_o the_o word_n but_o of_o table_n 4._o the_o six_o general_n council_n of_o constantinople_n acknowledge_v the_o scripture-deacon_n to_o be_v no_o more_o than_o overseer_n of_o the_o poor_a thus_o the_o council_n see_v the_o book_n of_o the_o act_n mention_n seven_o deacon_n ordain_v by_o the_o apostle_n 692._o invenimus_fw-la eos_fw-la locutos_fw-la esse_fw-la non_fw-la de_fw-la viris_fw-la qui_fw-la ministrant_fw-la mysteriis_fw-la sed_fw-la de_fw-la ministerio_fw-la quod_fw-la in_o usu_fw-la mensarum_fw-la adhibeatur_fw-la sexta._fw-la syn._n in_o trullo_n can._n 16._o a._n d._n 692._o the_o council_n of_o neocesarea_n determine_v there_o aught_o to_o be_v seven_o in_o every_o church_n but_o we_o have_v adapt_v the_o opinion_n of_o the_o father_n to_o the_o apostle_n expression_n do_v find_v that_o they_o speak_v not_o of_o those_o who_o minister_v in_o the_o sacred_a mystery_n but_o of_o such_o as_o serve_v at_o table_n thus_o chrysostom_n expound_v the_o place_n as_o they_o add_v there_o this_o testimony_n be_v the_o more_o considerable_a as_o not_o only_o contain_v the_o opinion_n of_o 166_o bishop_n who_o live_v about_o the_o latter_a end_n of_o the_o seven_o age_n but_o affirm_v the_o sense_n of_o the_o father_n of_o former_a age_n to_o be_v the_o same_o with_o they_o by_o all_o which_o it_o appear_v that_o deacon_n original_o be_v but_o overseer_n of_o the_o poor_a in_o future_a age_n the_o case_n be_v much_o alter_v the_o bishop_n affect_v to_o be_v guardian_n of_o the_o poor_a and_o to_o make_v the_o deacon_n amends_o admit_v they_o to_o baptise_v and_o preach_v the_o bishop_n omit_v preach_v and_o become_v servant_n of_o table_n and_o the_o deacon_n from_o serve_v of_o table_n step_v up_o into_o the_o pulpit_n and_o become_v preacher_n 5._o about_o the_o middle_n of_o the_o five_o age_n they_o be_v permit_v to_o read_v homily_n in_o the_o church_n but_o only_o in_o case_n of_o necessity_n as_o when_o the_o presbyter_n be_v disable_v by_o reason_n of_o some_o infirmity_n 4._o infirmity_n conc._n vasen_n can._n 4._o 6._o if_o the_o ordination_n of_o deacon_n as_o such_o make_v they_o minister_n of_o the_o word_n and_o sacrament_n as_o the_o rector_n affirm_v how_o come_v the_o church_n of_o england_n to_o ordain_v they_o again_o before_o they_o be_v complete_a minister_n of_o the_o sacrament_n what_o precedent_n have_v they_o in_o scripture_n for_o this_o 7._o it_o be_v absurd_a to_o say_v that_o the_o ordination_n of_o deacon_n to_o serve_v table_n make_v they_o also_o minister_n of_o the_o word_n and_o sacrament_n one_o individual_a ordination_n to_o one_o and_o the_o same_o work_n can_v confer_v two_o distinct_a power_n they_o may_v as_o well_o say_v the_o ordination_n of_o a_o parish-priest_n make_v he_o a_o diocesan_n bishop_n but_o let_v we_o hear_v the_o rector_n reason_n he_o think_v it_o be_v clear_a they_o be_v ordain_v not_o only_o to_o serve_v table_n but_o to_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o word_n and_o sacrament_n 1._o because_o it_o be_v immediate_o note_v say_v he_o that_o the_o word_n of_o god_n increase_v 4_o p._n 4_o v._o 7._o but_o he_o consider_v not_o that_o this_o be_v rather_o to_o be_v impute_v to_o the_o apostle_n give_v themselves_o continual_o to_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o word_n and_o prayer_n ver._n 4._o have_v consign_v the_o service_n of_o table_n to_o the_o deacon_n they_o attend_v the_o ministry_n of_o the_o word_n more_o constant_o and_o with_o less_o distraction_n and_o than_o it_o follow_v the_o word_n of_o god_n increase_v v._o 7._o 2._o his_o next_o reason_n be_v stephen_n one_o of_o they_o ibid._n ibid._n do_v great_a wonder_n etc._n etc._n none_o be_v able_a to_o resist_v the_o wisdom_n by_o which_o he_o speak_v v._o 8_o 10._o it_o be_v not_o say_v that_o he_o preach_v to_o the_o people_n only_o that_o he_o dispute_v in_o the_o synagogue_n in_o defence_n of_o the_o gospel_n which_o a_o private_a man_n may_v do_v v._n 9_o 1_o pet._n 3.15_o 3._o his_o three_o reason_n philip_n another_o of_o they_o afterward_o preach_v at_o samaria_n ch_n 8._o he_o do_v not_o preach_v at_o jerusalem_n but_o at_o samaria_n after_o he_o have_v leave_v jerusalem_n and_o cease_v to_o exercise_v the_o office_n of_o a_o deacon_n there_o act_v 8.4_o 5._o he_o may_v be_v advance_v to_o the_o degree_n of_o a_o evangelist_n act_v 21.8_o if_o you_o find_v one_o that_o be_v a_o presbyter_n half_a a_o year_n ago_o now_o exercise_v episcopal_a jurisdicition_n will_v you_o say_v that_o a_o presbyter_n as_o such_o have_v episcopal_a jurisdiction_n philip_n have_v serve_v table_n at_o jerusalem_n and_o afterward_o preach_v at_o samaria_n do_v it_o follow_v that_o he_o preach_v as_o a_o deacon_n when_o preach_v be_v no_o part_n of_o the_o office_n of_o a_o deacon_n as_o such_o bishop_n pearson_n confess_v he_o be_v a_o evangelist_n at_o this_o time_n 66._o time_n lect._n v._o in_o act._n p._n 66._o but_o suppose_v he_o have_v preach_v at_o jerusalem_n which_o doc_v not_o appear_v it_o be_v no_o more_o than_o what_o be_v usual_o do_v by_o all_o gift_a person_n in_o those_o extraordinary_a time_n apollo_n who_o be_v not_o perfect_o catechise_v in_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n nor_o so_o much_o as_o baptise_a with_o the_o baptism_n of_o christ_n and_o therefore_o not_o ordain_v by_o any_o apostle_n yet_o preach_v act_v 18.24_o 25._o grotius_n acknowledge_v that_o in_o those_o time_n to_o persrcution_n private_a person_n may_v preach_v and_o he_o quote_v to_o that_o purpose_n act_v 11.20_o 8.5_o 11.20_o in_o tali_fw-la cumstantiâ_fw-la evangelium_fw-la praedicare_fw-la non_fw-la diaconorum_fw-la tantum_fw-la sed_fw-la &_o privatorum_fw-la grot._n in_o act._n 8.5_o hilarius_n the_o roman_a deacon_n go_v high_a and_o say_v that_o at_o the_o first_o plant_n of_o christianity_n all_o be_v permit_v to_o preach_v baptise_v and_o explain_v the_o scripture_n in_o the_o congregation_n 1_o cor._n 14.24_o 4._o 14.24_o omnibus_fw-la inter_fw-la initia_fw-la concessum_fw-la est_fw-la &_o evangelizare_fw-la &_o baptizate_n &_o scripturas_fw-la in_o ecclesia_fw-la explanare_fw-la hilar._n in_o eph._n 4._o origen_n be_v persecute_v from_o alexandria_n preach_v public_o at_o caesarea_n upon_o the_o desire_n of_o theoctistus_n bishop_n of_o the_o place_n before_o he_o be_v ordain_v when_o demetrius_n of_o alexandria_n censure_v the_o action_n as_o irregular_a theoctistus_n and_o alexander_n bishop_n of_o jerusalem_n justify_v it_o and_o produce_v several_a example_n of_o the_o same_o nature_n 14._o nature_n niceph._n eccl._n hist_n v._o 14._o a_o layman_n be_v allow_v to_o teach_v at_o the_o request_n of_o the_o clergy_n in_o a_o council_n of_o carthage_n hold_v about_o the_o year_n 436_o 98._o 436_o laicus_fw-la praesentibus_fw-la clerios_fw-la nisi_fw-la ipsis_fw-la rogantibusdocere_fw-la non_fw-la audeat_fw-la carth._n conc._n iu._n can._n 98._o 4._o his_o four_o reason_n because_o long_o after_o it_o be_v observe_v by_o luke_n that_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o seven_o as_o i_o understand_v he_o preach_v the_o word_n in_o phenice_n cyprus_n and_o at_o antioch_n 4._o p._n 4._o etc._n etc._n act_v 11.19_o luke_n say_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d they_o which_o be_v seature_v abroad_o preach_v the_o word_n the_o rector_n make_v bold_a to_o pervert_v the_o text_n and_o say_v the_o rest_n of_o the_o seven_o preach_v the_o word_n and_o which_o be_v more_o unpardonable_a he_o put_v the_o word_n in_o a_o different_a character_n as_o if_o they_o be_v the_o word_n of_o luke_n he_o have_v no_o colour_n to_o foist_v his_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o rest_n into_o this_o text_n but_o it_o be_v apparent_o do_v upon_o design_n to_o support_v a_o unscriptural_a hypothesis_n it_o be_v more_o pardonable_a to_o misrepresent_v a_o hundred_o father_n than_o to_o alter_v one_o text_n of_o the_o sacred_a scripture_n he_o be_v a_o very_a bold_a man_n that_o dare_v put_v word_n in_o the_o mouth_n of_o inspire_a writer_n luke_n refer_v to_o act_n 8.1_o they_o be_v all_o seatter_v abroad_o except_o the_o apostle_n who_o be_v these_o all_o not_o the_o six_o deacon_n only_o 63_o only_o pear_n annal._n paul_n p._n 1_o &_o lect._n iv_o in_o act._n apost_n p._n 63_o what_o sense_n will_v it_o be_v to_o say_v all_z the_o
six_o deacon_n for_o stephen_n the_o seven_o be_v martyr_a be_v scatter_v except_o the_o apostle_n all_o be_v scatter_v that_o be_v all_o the_o 120_o which_o make_v up_o that_o famous_a council_n in_o act_n 1.15_o except_o the_o apostle_n loc_n apostle_n vid._n lighis_n in_o loc_n lucius_z of_o cyrene_n who_o be_v none_o of_o the_o seven_o deacon_n be_v one_o of_o those_o that_o be_v sc_a attere_v act_v 11.19_o 20._o and_o 13.1_o the_o rector_n will_v persuade_v they_o be_v only_o the_o six_o deacon_n that_o be_v scatter_v of_o which_o philip_n preach_v in_o samaria_n and_o he_o have_v find_v the_o rest_n in_o act_n 11.19_o we_o have_v see_v the_o invalidity_n of_o his_o four_o reason_n to_o prove_v deacon_n to_o be_v minister_n of_o the_o word_n and_o sacrament_n he_o be_v apt_a to_o believe_v these_o deacon_n be_v afterward_o call_v elder_n 6._o p._n 6._o as_o have_v power_n to_o minister_v the_o word_n and_o sacrament_n first_o mention_v act_n 11.30_o but_o it_o will_v not_o follow_v that_o they_o be_v equal_a with_o the_o apostle_n they_o that_o be_v so_o dispose_v may_v take_v conjecture_n for_o article_n of_o faith_n but_o we_o have_v prove_v the_o deacon_n to_o be_v very_o different_a from_o presbyter_n and_o if_o the_o church_n of_o england_n do_v not_o think_v they_o so_o she_o will_v not_o ordain_v they_o over_o again_o to_o make_v presbyter_n of_o they_o who_o ever_o affirm_v presbyter_n to_o be_v equal_a with_o the_o apostle_n dare_v he_o say_v bishop_n be_v equal_a with_o they_o ordination_n at_o least_o must_v be_v except_v say_v the_o rector_n i_o always_o think_v the_o apostle_n excel_v presbyter_n in_o far_o great_a thing_n than_o that_o of_o ordination_n but_o if_o you_o be_v so_o good_a nature_a as_o to_o allow_v the_o rector_n that_o the_o apostle_n be_v superior_a to_o presbyter_n in_o point_n of_o ordination_n and_o entrust_v none_o but_o the_o bishop_n with_o it_o after_o their_o decease_n he_o be_v even_o content_a that_o a_o presbyter_n shall_v be_v equal_a with_o a_o apostle_n in_o other_o respect_n though_o elder_n be_v first_o mention_v act_v 11.30_o they_o be_v in_o be_v before_o they_o be_v speak_v of_o as_o the_o ordinary_a settle_a governor_n of_o the_o church_n mr._n g._n proceed_v to_o prove_v that_o presbyter_n can_v not_o ordain_v 8_o p._n 7_o 8_o because_o philip_n the_o deacon_n can_v not_o confer_v the_o holy_a ghost_n upon_o the_o believe_a samaritan_n the_o apostle_n send_v peter_n and_o john_n who_o by_o prayer_n and_o lay_v on_o of_o hand_n confer_v the_o holy_a ghost_n upon_o they_o act_v 8.12_o 15_o 17._o and_o thereby_o ordain_v they_o therefore_o the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n and_o ordination_n be_v lodge_v in_o the_o apostle_n only_o or_o as_o supreme_a 1._o he_o be_v not_o sure_a ordination_n be_v intend_v there_o himself_o own_v that_o some_o may_v 7_o p._n 7_o and_o with_o reason_n believe_v it_o confirmation_n so_o do_v dr._n hammond_n and_o seucral_a other_o and_o if_o we_o understand_v confirmation_n by_o this_o miraculous_a confer_v of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n his_o argument_n be_v spoil_v 2._o if_o ordination_n be_v intend_v it_o no_o more_o prejudices_fw-la presbyter_n power_n of_o ordain_v than_o it_o do_v that_o of_o the_o bishop_n for_o neither_o can_v confer_v those_o extraordinary_a gift_n 3._o all_o that_o have_v power_n of_o ordination_n have_v not_o power_n of_o give_v the_o holy_a ghost_n evangelist_n be_v trust_v with_o the_o former_a but_o not_o with_o the_o latter_a timothy_n and_o titus_n ordain_v but_o do_v not_o give_v the_o holy_a ghost_n he_o fancy_n that_o simon_n magus_n desire_v the_o ordain_v power_n v._o 19_o give_v i_o this_o power_n what_o power_n what_o power_n 8._o p._n 8._o say_v the_o rector_n not_o power_n to_o labour_v in_o the_o word_n and_o doctrine_n and_o to_o administer_v the_o holy_a sacrament_n like_a enough_o for_o simon_n magus_n as_o little_a care_v for_o that_o as_o some_o other_o who_o have_v possess_v themselves_o of_o that_o power_n he_o so_o much_o covet_v what_o power_n be_v it_o i_o doubt_v not_o but_o you_o will_v expect_v some_o rare_a discovery_n have_v raise_v our_o expectation_n to_o a_o great_a height_n at_o length_n he_o resolve_v the_o question_n and_o tell_v we_o it_o be_v a_o power_n of_o confer_v that_o power_n i._n e._n as_o he_o explain_v it_o that_o on_o whosoever_o he_o lay_v his_o hand_n he_o may_v be_v ordain_v to_o the_o ministry_n that_o be_v in_o plain_a term_n he_o desire_v to_o be_v make_v a_o bishop_n and_o to_o be_v entrust_v with_o the_o ordain_v power_n i_o question_v whether_o the_o power_n then_o be_v so_o profitable_a as_o it_o have_v prove_v since_o however_o we_o be_v oblige_v to_o this_o gentleman_n for_o help_v we_o to_o so_o clear_a a_o notion_n of_o simony_n iii_o he_o find_v another_o ordination_n in_o act_n 9.17_o 9_o p._n 8_o 9_o where_o it_o be_v say_v that_o ananias_n lay_v his_o hand_n upon_o saul_n this_o may_v he_o to_o ordain_v he_o for_o he_o lay_v his_o hand_n on_o he_o not_o only_o that_o he_o may_v receive_v his_o sight_n but_o be_v also_o fill_v with_o the_o holy_a ghost_n but_o i_o desire_v the_o reader_n to_o observe_v that_o according_a to_o this_o hypothesis_n saul_n be_v ordain_v before_o he_o be_v baptise_a he_o be_v ordain_v as_o he_o call_v it_o v._o 17._o and_o be_v baptise_a after_o ananias_n have_v lay_v his_o hand_n on_o he_o v._o 18._o that_o be_v he_o be_v first_o make_v a_o apostle_n than_o a_o christian_a he_o make_v ananias_n but_o a_o private_a believer_n or_o disciple_n 9_o p._n 9_o his_o be_v call_v a_o disciple_n v._o 10._o be_v no_o evidence_n of_o it_o for_o the_o apostle_n be_v so_o call_v act_v 1.15_o how_o come_v he_o to_o forget_v that_o dorotheus_n call_v he_o a_o bishop_n of_o damascus_n this_o will_v have_v something_o help_v his_o hypothesis_n see_v he_o be_v tesolve_v to_o have_v he_o ordain_v before_o he_o be_v baptise_a even_o let_v it_o pass_v for_o a_o episcopal_a ordination_n but_o that_o which_o spoil_v all_o be_v paul_n say_v of_o himself_o that_o he_o be_v a_o apostle_n not_o of_o man_n neither_o by_o man_n but_o by_o jesus_n christ_n and_o god_n the_o father_n gal._n ●_o 1_o iv_o in_o the_o next_o place_n he_o consider_v the_o ordination_n in_o act_n 13.1_o 2_o 3._o 10._o p._n 10._o now_o there_o be_v at_o antioch_n certain_a prophet_n and_o teacher_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n say_v unto_o they_o separate_a i_n barnabas_n and_o saul_n j._n o._n argue_v from_o this_o instance_n that_o presbyter_n have_v power_n to_o ordain_v for_o the_o ordainer_n be_v prophet_n and_o teacher_n now_o teacher_n be_v ordinary_a presbyter_n who_o be_v distinguish_v from_o prophet_n and_o other_o extraordinary_a officer_n 1_o cor._n 12.28_o eph._n 4.11_o what_o say_v mr._n g._n to_o this_o even_o nothing_o to_o the_o purpose_n ibid._n ibid._n the_o person_n here_o speak_v of_o say_v he_o be_v teacher_n that_o be_v ordinary_a minister_n general_o speak_v but_o call_v prophet_n because_o they_o receive_v this_o special_a command_n from_o christ_n to_o ordain_v barnabas_n and_o saul_n 1._o he_o confound_v prophet_n and_o teacher_n which_o be_v distinguish_v here_o and_o in_o 1_o cor._n 12.28_o eph._n 4.11_o prophet_n be_v extraordinary_a teacher_n ordinary_a officer_n this_o gentleman_n to_o serve_v a_o turn_n make_v they_o one_o and_o the_o same_o if_o this_o be_v not_o to_o pervert_v the_o scripture_n i_o know_v not_o what_o be_v luke_n say_v there_o be_v at_o antioch_n certain_a prophet_n and_o teacher_n that_o be_v if_o we_o may_v believe_v the_o rector_n prophet_n and_o prophet_n for_o the_o teacher_n be_v prophet_n say_v he_o 2._o the_o teacher_n be_v call_v prophet_n say_v he_o they_o be_v so_o call_v by_o he_o and_o not_o by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n 3._o they_o be_v call_v prophet_n because_o they_o receive_v this_o special_a command_n from_o christ_n by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n as_o he_o think_v how_o can_v he_o prove_v that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n do_v speak_v by_o immediate_a revelation_n to_o the_o teacher_n here_o the_o text_n speak_v nothing_o of_o it_o loc_fw-la dixit_fw-la spiritus_fw-la per_fw-la prophet_n as_o istos_fw-la grot._n in_o loc_fw-la it_o be_v most_o reasonable_a to_o think_v he_o signify_v his_o mind_n by_o one_o or_o more_o of_o the_o prophet_n to_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o minister_n then_o to_o fancy_n he_o advance_v the_o teacher_n into_o the_o order_n of_o prophet_n for_o the_o time_n have_v the_o revelation_n be_v communicate_v to_o all_o in_o common_a what_o need_v the_o evangelist_n to_o have_v call_v the_o ordainer_n prophet_n and_o teacher_n it_o will_v have_v be_v enough_o to_o call_v they_o prophet_n but_o there_o be_v both_o in_o antioch_n prophet_n to_o who_o the_o revelation_n come_v and_o
teacher_n or_o ordinary_a presbyter_n who_o be_v include_v in_o the_o command_n of_o separate_a paul_n and_o barnabas_n for_o the_o apostleship_n of_o the_o gentile_n this_o ordination_n which_o be_v in_o favour_n of_o the_o gentile_a world_n be_v intend_v for_o a_o precedent_n to_o the_o gentile_a church_n in_o after_o age_n as_o learned_a dr._n lightfoot_n observe_v 289._o observe_v vol_n 1._o p._n 289._o this_o instance_n of_o ordination_n by_o presbyter_n remain_v firm_a and_o unshaken_a and_o all_o that_o mr._n g._n have_v say_v against_o it_o serve_v only_o to_o discover_v the_o strength_n of_o it_o he_o undertake_v to_o show_v the_o difference_n between_o apostle_n and_o prophet_n but_o not_o a_o word_n of_o difference_n between_o the_o prophet_n and_o the_o teacher_n that_o will_v have_v discover_v the_o fallacy_n of_o his_o reason_n he_o say_v apostle_n and_o prophet_n have_v a_o extraordinary_a assistance_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n 11._o p._n 10_o 11._o yet_o with_o this_o difference_n the_o authority_n of_o the_o apostle_n be_v fix_v and_o habitual_a their_o character_n indelible_a and_o their_o office_n perpetual_a i_o expect_v he_o will_v have_v say_v a_o infallible_a assistance_n but_o it_o may_v be_v he_o intend_v that_o by_o extraordinary_a though_o the_o follow_a word_n be_v a_o little_a inconsistent_a and_o divest_v the_o apostle_n of_o the_o extraordinary_a assistance_n of_o the_o spirit_n except_o in_o some_o case_n the_o apostle_n say_v he_o for_o the_o most_o part_n 11._o p._n 11._o act_v as_o it_o be_v according_a to_o their_o own_o discretion_n what_o without_o the_o conduct_n of_o the_o spirit_n the_o rector_n shall_v have_v have_v the_o discretion_n to_o have_v conceal_v so_o dangerous_a a_o position_n which_o strike_v at_o the_o foundation_n of_o our_o faith_n this_o principle_n natural_o lead_v to_o deism_n and_o irreligion_n but_o worse_a follow_v i_o suppose_v say_v he_o in_o matter_n of_o importance_n and_o in_o doctrine_n essential_a guide_v by_o the_o spirit_n i_o hope_v he_o do_v not_o mean_a as_o he_o speak_v do_v he_o but._n suppose_v they_o be_v guide_v by_o the_o spirit_n admit_v he_o mean_v by_o suppose_v his_o take_n it_o for_o grant_v than_o the_o meaning_n be_v they_o be_v guide_v by_o the_o spirit_n only_o in_o two_o case_n 1._o in_o matter_n of_o importance_n i._n e._n in_o practical_o if_o i_o underftand_v he_o ibid._n ibid._n we_o conceive_v all_o the_o rule_v the_o holy_a apostle_n leave_v its_o about_o the_o agenda_fw-la of_o religion_n be_v give_v by_o inspiration_n and_o that_o all_o the_o practical_a duty_n they_o recommend_v to_o we_o be_v matter_n of_o importance_n to_o we_o they_o be_v so_o what_o they_o be_v to_o this_o gentleman_n he_o know_v best_o 2._o he_o suppose_v they_o be_v guide_v by_o the_o spirit_n in_o doctrine_n essential_a 1._o it_o be_v well_o he_o ascribe_v any_o of_o their_o doctrine_n to_o the_o holy_a spirit_n of_o god_n but_o why_o not_o all_o as_o well_o as_o some_o the_o spirit_n be_v promise_v they_o to_o guide_v they_o into_o all_o truth_n john_n 16.13_o jesus_n christ_n say_v the_o spirit_n shall_v guide_v they_o into_o all_o truth_n no_o say_v mr._n g._n the_o spirit_n guide_v they_o in_o doctrine_n essential_a only_o christ_n say_v the_o holy_a ghost_n shall_v teach_v you_o all_o thing_n john_n 14.26_o mr._n g._n say_v not_o all_o thing_n but_o matter_n of_o importance_n and_o doctrine_n essential_a only_o doubtless_o the_o lord_n jesus_n be_v as_o good_a as_o his_o word_n and_o give_v the_o infallible_a assistance_n of_o his_o spirit_n to_o the_o bless_a apostle_n in_o all_o point_n of_o faith_n and_o practice_n they_o recommend_v to_o we_o though_o mr._n g._n do_v not_o believe_v it_o his_o unbelief_n can_v make_v the_o faith_n of_o god_n without_o effect_n let_v god_n be_v true_a and_o every_o man_n a_o liar_n 3.3.4_o rom._n 3.3.4_o 2._o according_a to_o his_o n_z retched_a supposition_n the_o holy_a apostle_n may_v be_v mistake_v in_o doctrine_n not_o essential_a for_o they_o have_v not_o the_o assistance_n of_o the_o spirit_n as_o he_o suggest_v and_o if_o they_o may_v be_v mistake_v who_o know_v but_o they_o be_v mistake_v and_o may_v obtrude_v error_n instead_o of_o truth_n upon_o the_o world_n and_o if_o so_o how_o can_v it_o be_v prove_v to_o be_v our_o duty_n to_o believe_v those_o doctrine_n not_o essential_a but_o thanks_o be_v to_o god_n we_o have_v a_o sure_a word_n of_o promise_n and_o consequent_o a_o sure_a rule_n of_o faith_n and_o practice_n whatever_o the_o rector_n insinuate_v to_o the_o contrary_a in_o favour_n of_o atheistical_a spirit_n 3._o the_o learned_a be_v not_o agree_v about_o the_o number_n of_o doctrine_n essential_a those_o be_v doctrine_n essential_a to_o christianity_n with_o some_o that_o be_v but_o integral_n if_o i_o may_v so_o say_v with_o other_o all_o protestant_n be_v agree_v that_o essential_a doctrine_n be_v but_o few_o so_o that_o most_o of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o christianity_n be_v but_o discretionary_a opinion_n and_o no_o dictate_v of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n with_o this_o man._n tell_v it_o not_o in_o gath_n lest_o the_o uncircumcised_a rejoice_v 4._o admit_v the_o creed_n call_v the_o apostle_n be_v a_o summary_n of_o essential_a doctrine_n it_o do_v not_o express_o assert_v the_o divinity_n of_o christ_n and_o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o therefore_o the_o socinian_o can_v free_o subscribe_v it_o will_v the_o rector_n say_v the_o divinity_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o personality_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v doctrine_n not_o essential_a and_o consequent_o not_o deliver_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n 5._o be_v the_o superiority_n of_o bishop_n a_o essential_a doctrine_n if_o it_o be_v they_o be_v no_o christian_n who_o do_v not_o believe_v it_o for_o they_o reject_v a_o essential_a doctrine_n of_o christianity_n but_o no_o sober_a protestant_n will_v affirm_v it_o for_o this_o be_v to_o damn_v all_o the_o foreign_a reform_a church_n who_o believe_v it_o not_o if_o it_o be_v no_o essential_a doctrine_n as_o certain_o it_o be_v not_o we_o be_v leave_v to_o our_o liberty_n whether_o we_o will_v believe_v it_o or_o not_o for_o the_o apostle_n be_v not_o guide_v by_o the_o spirit_n in_o deliver_v it_o according_a to_o mr._n g's_o hypothesis_n he_o proceed_v to_o describe_v the_o prophet_n their_o power_n say_v he_o be_v not_o constant_a they_o speak_v only_o as_o the_o spirit_n move_v 11._o p._n 11._o which_o if_o he_o cease_v to_o do_v they_o be_v no_o long_o prophet_n thus_o the_o teacher_n at_o antioch_n ordinary_a minister_n and_o under_o the_o apostle_n yet_o be_v move_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n become_v prophet_n and_o ordain_v barnabas_n and_o saul_n here_o he_o mistake_v also_o 1._o in_o make_v the_o prophet_n to_o be_v only_o such_o while_n they_o be_v actual_o inspire_v there_o be_v prophet_n by_o office_n and_o they_o be_v so_o call_v when_o the_o spirit_n of_o prophecy_n do_v not_o actual_o move_v they_o 2_o king_n 3.11_o 15._o 1_o cor._n 14.29_o 32._o their_o power_n be_v constant_a though_o the_o exercise_n of_o it_o be_v not_o so_o nathan_n be_v call_v a_o prophet_n when_o the_o spirit_n of_o prophecy_n be_v not_o actual_o upon_o he_o 2_o sam._n 7.2_o 3._o 2._o all_o inspiration_n by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n do_v not_o make_v a_o prophet_n balaam_n and_o caiaphas_n be_v inspire_v but_o no_o divine_a prophet_n ananias_n be_v move_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o lay_v his_o hand_n on_o paul_n for_o recover_v of_o his_o sight_n but_o it_o do_v not_o appear_v that_o he_o be_v a_o prophet_n he_o be_v no_o where_o so_o call_v god_n speak_v to_o he_o in_o a_o vision_n do_v not_o make_v he_o a_o prophet_n as_o mr._n g._n fancy_n for_o so_o he_o do_v to_o cornelius_n who_o be_v so_o far_o from_o be_v a_o prophet_n that_o at_o that_o time_n he_o be_v not_o a_o christian_a act_n 10.3_o 4._o admit_v the_o ordinary_a minister_n at_o antioch_n be_v inward_o move_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o ordain_v paul_n and_o barnabas_n which_o be_v not_o say_v in_o the_o text_n that_o do_v not_o make_v they_o prophet_n for_o luke_n distinguish_v between_o the_o prophet_n and_o the_o teacher_n though_o mr._n g._n design_o confound_v they_o nor_o do_v a_o particular_a direction_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n constitute_v prophet_n as_o appear_v in_o ananias_n a_o disciple_n and_o it_o may_v be_v a_o teacher_n and_o in_o cornelius_n neither_o disciple_n nor_o teacher_n 3._o he_o call_v the_o teacher_n at_o antioch_n ordinary_a minister_n and_o yet_o say_v they_o be_v prophet_n that_o be_v extraordinary_a minister_n for_o himself_o own_v prophet_n to_o be_v extraordinary_a officer_n one_o will_v think_v if_o they_o be_v ordinary_a minister_n they_o be_v not_o extraordinary_a if_o extraordinary_a they_o be_v not_o ordinary_a i_o leave_v it_o to_o
he_o that_o can_v to_o reconcile_v these_o contradiction_n v._o his_o next_o instance_n of_o ordination_n be_v from_o act_n 14.23_o 12._o p._n 12._o the_o ordination_n mention_v there_o be_v by_o apostle_n and_o not_o by_o presbyter_n as_o he_o say_v this_o instance_n make_v as_o little_a for_o he_o as_o the_o former_a because_o 1._o there_o be_v good_a reason_n why_o the_o apostle_n alone_o shall_v ordain_v presbyter_n in_o church_n that_o have_v no_o minister_n in_o they_o until_o the_o apostle_n have_v constitute_v they_o presbyter_n can_v not_o ordain_v before_o they_o be_v in_o be_v he_o be_v aware_a of_o this_o reason_n and_o allow_v these_o church_n have_v no_o presbyter_n in_o they_o at_o this_o time_n 13._o p._n 13._o but_o this_o say_v he_o be_v not_o the_o reason_n for_o then_o philip_n will_v have_v lay_v hand_n on_o those_o that_o be_v ordain_v at_o samaria_n the_o instance_n of_o philip_n we_o consider_v before_o if_o he_o be_v a_o deacon_n as_o he_o affirm_v all_o will_v own_o he_o have_v no_o power_n of_o ordination_n if_o a_o evangelist_n as_o it_o shall_v seem_v from_o act_n 21.8_o all_o will_v own_v evangelist_n may_v ordain_v but_o they_o can_v not_o give_v the_o extraordinary_a gift_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n which_o be_v give_v by_o the_o apostle_n 2._o the_o apostle_n make_v elder_n in_o every_o church_n with_o the_o suffrage_n of_o the_o people_n so_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d which_o we_o render_v ordain_v act_v 14.23_o signify_v loc_fw-la signify_v significat_fw-la hos_fw-la suffragiis_fw-la electos_fw-la esse_fw-la erasmus_n in_o loc_fw-la the_o multitude_n of_o believer_n choose_v the_o deacon_n who_o mr._n g._n will_v have_v to_o be_v the_o same_o with_o these_o elder_n before_o the_o apostle_n ordain_v they_o and_o so_o they_o do_v the_o two_o candidate_n for_o the_o apostleship_n act_v 1_o mr._n g._n allow_v this_o power_n of_o the_o people_n now_o if_o these_o ordination_n be_v precedent_n unto_o we_o as_o he_o take_v they_o to_o be_v they_o be_v but_o ill_o follow_v by_o our_o episcopal_a ordainer_n for_o the_o election_n of_o the_o people_n seldom_o precede_v their_o ordination_n 3._o they_o ordain_v elder_n in_o every_o church_n not_o one_o but_o many_o and_o why_o not_o bishop_n also_o if_o they_o have_v be_v necessary_a it_o be_v evident_a there_o be_v none_o at_o this_o time_n the_o apostle_n leave_v the_o church_n under_o the_o care_n or_o these_o elder_n without_o superior_a bishop_n it_o will_v be_v say_v these_o elder_n be_v subject_a to_o the_o apostle_n and_o be_v not_o the_o bishop_n subject_n to_o the_o apostle_n also_o i_o hope_v none_o will_v say_v they_o be_v equal_a to_o they_o how_o come_v the_o apostle_n not_o to_o ordain_v a_o bishop_n in_o every_o church_n when_o they_o themselves_o make_v but_o a_o short_a stay_n with_o they_o 24._o act_n 14.23_o 24._o they_o can_v not_o personal_o oversee_v they_o all_o and_o if_o bishop_n have_v be_v necessary_a in_o their_o absence_n doubtless_o they_o will_v have_v appoint_v they_o it_o will_v be_v say_v they_o intend_v to_o return_v to_o visit_v they_o again_o but_o when_o they_o they_o take_v their_o last_o leave_n of_o they_o than_o they_o appoint_v bishop_n for_o their_o successor_n this_o be_v notorious_o false_a for_o the_o apostle_n paul_n commit_v the_o church_n of_o ephesus_n to_o the_o government_n of_o the_o presbyter_n there_o when_o he_o take_v his_o last_o leave_n of_o they_o intend_v to_o see_v they_o no_o more_o 28._o act_n 20.17_o 25_o 28._o whether_o he_o do_v see_v they_o again_o or_o no_o be_v nothing_o to_o the_o purpose_n for_o it_o be_v certain_a he_o think_v he_o shall_v see_v they_o no_o more_o how_o come_v he_o than_o not_o to_o leave_v a_o superior_a bishop_n over_o the_o presbyter_n of_o ephesus_n for_o his_o successor_n when_o he_o be_v take_v his_o final_a leave_n of_o they_o no_o one_o instance_n can_v be_v give_v in_o all_o the_o new_a testament_n of_o the_o apostle_n ordain_v a_o single_a person_n to_o succeed_v they_o as_o a_o fix_a officer_n in_o the_o government_n of_o any_o one_o church_n when_o they_o take_v their_o last_o leave_n of_o it_o when_o the_o apostle_n leave_v timothy_n at_o ephesus_n he_o intend_v to_o come_v again_o 1_o tim._n 3.14_o when_o titus_n have_v ordain_v elder_n in_o crete_n to_o govern_v the_o church_n there_o the_o apostle_n call_v he_o away_o tit._n 3.12_o his_o next_o act_n of_o church_n government_n which_o he_o find_v in_o act_n 15._o 13._o p._n 13._o we_o have_v consider_v before_o none_o that_o i_o know_v of_o have_v argue_v for_o presbyter_n ordain_v from_o this_o place_n as_o he_o imagine_v they_o may_v he_o grant_v that_o elder_n have_v a_o share_n in_o the_o deliberative_a and_o legislative_a part_n of_o church-government_n 14._o p._n 14._o but_o seem_v loath_a to_o trust_v they_o with_o the_o executive_a power_n he_o give_v they_o the_o great_a and_o more_o difficult_a part_n of_o church-government_n viz._n a_o power_n of_o make_v law_n and_o deny_v they_o the_o easy_a and_o less_o honourable_a power_n of_o execute_v those_o law_n he_o observe_v 15._o p._n 15._o the_o elder_n be_v subordinate_a to_o the_o apostle_n who_o ever_o deny_v it_o and_o so_o be_v timothy_n and_o titus_n his_o suppose_a bishop_n the_o epistle_n write_v to_o they_o be_v convince_a evidence_n of_o their_o subordination_n to_o paul_n 1_o tim._n 1.18_o and_o 4.16_o and_o 6.13_o 14._o 2_o tim._n 4.1_o 9_o 13._o he_o charge_v he_o order_v he_o to_o bring_v his_o cloak_n and_o personal_o to_o attend_v he_o so_o he_o enjoin_v titus_n to_o attend_v he_o titus_n 3.12_o his_o epistle_n to_o both_o be_v in_o a_o stile_n at_o least_o equal_o authoritative_a with_o that_o which_o bishop_n use_v in_o their_o pastoral_a letter_n to_o their_o clergy_n and_o therefore_o all_o the_o reason_n of_o mr._n g._n from_o the_o subordination_n of_o presbyter_n to_o the_o apostle_n be_v impertinent_a for_o timothy_n and_o titus_n who_o he_o call_v bishop_n be_v subordinate_a to_o the_o apostle_n so_o that_o if_o presbyter_n have_v no_o power_n of_o government_n no_o more_o have_v bishop_n for_o these_o be_v under_o the_o apostle_n also_o he_o say_v james_n be_v not_o the_o apostle_n 16._o p._n 16._o but_o brother_n of_o christ_n paul_n reckon_v he_o among_o the_o apostle_n gal._n 1.19_o other_o of_o the_o apostle_n see_v i_o none_o save_v james_n the_o lord_n brother_n bishop_n pearson_n observe_v that_o the_o opinion_n that_o make_v he_o no_o apostle_n take_v rise_v from_o the_o fictitious_a write_n of_o clemens_n lect._n in_o act._n apost_n p._n 58._o vi_o he_o sind_v a_o ordination_n in_o act_n 19.6_o 17._o p._n 17._o 7._o in_o which_o paul_n only_o lay_v his_o hand_n on_o twelve_o person_n at_o ephesus_n and_o not_o timothy_n and_o erastus_n who_o be_v with_o pául_a at_o this_o time_n act_v 19.22_o 1._o it_o be_v not_o say_v that_o timothy_n and_o erastus_n be_v with_o paul_n when_o he_o lay_v his_o hand_n on_o those_o twelve_o man_n act_v 19.22_o do_v not_o prove_v it_o for_o it_o speak_v of_o paul_n send_v they_o to_o macedonia_n which_o be_v about_o two_o year_n after_o act_v 19_o 10_o 21_o 22._o 2._o but_o suppose_v they_o be_v paul_n lay_v hand_n on_o those_o twelve_o man_n to_o confer_v the_o gift_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n on_o they_o which_z timothy_n and_o erastus_n can_v not_o do_v 19.6_o act._n 19.6_o this_o power_n be_v peculiar_a to_o the_o apostle_n 8.17_o act._n 8.17_o we_o do_v not_o read_v that_o any_o prophet_n or_o evangelist_n be_v ever_o entrust_v with_o this_o power_n 68_o power_n pear_n lect._n v._o in_o act._n p._n 68_o much_o less_o be_v ordinary_a officer_n the_o case_n of_o ananias_n be_v singular_a and_o depend_v on_o a_o particular_a revelation_n which_o be_v a_o evidence_n that_o the_o power_n of_o give_v the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v not_o inherent_a in_o he_o as_o in_o the_o apostle_n act_n 9.17_o 3._o if_o there_o be_v any_o force_n in_o this_o argument_n it_o exclude_v bishop_n as_o well_o as_o presbyter_n from_o the_o power_n of_o ordination_n for_o neither_o of_o they_o can_v nor_o can_v confer_v the_o extraordinary_a gift_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n which_o be_v give_v by_o the_o apostle_n hand_n vii_o he_o think_v that_o the_o corinthian_a elder_n have_v no_o power_n of_o excommunication_n 17._o p._n 17._o paul_n decree_v it_o say_v he_o and_o command_v they_o to_o confirm_v and_o publish_v it_o 1_o cor._n 5.3_o 4_o 5._o 1._o if_o they_o have_v no_o power_n why_o do_v the_o apostle_n reprove_v they_o for_o not_o do_v it_o 1_o cor._n 5.2_o and_o enjoin_v they_o to_o avoid_v disorderly_a walker_n ver_fw-la 13._o and_o to_o judge_v they_o that_o be_v within_o ver_fw-la 14._o to_o judge_n be_v to_o decree_n as_o the_o rector_n expound_v it_o in_o v._o 3._o
apostle_n but_o apostle_n superior_a to_o they_o act_v 15.2_o and_o so_o be_v prophet_n and_o evangelist_n but_o we_o do_v not_o find_v that_o they_o be_v under_o the_o inspection_n of_o one_o apostle_n prophet_n or_o evangelist_n more_o than_o another_o but_o subject_a to_o all_o and_o willing_a to_o be_v guide_v by_o they_o as_o there_o be_v occasion_n 4._o be_v not_o the_o apostle_n head_n of_o the_o bishop_n also_o this_o we_o have_v prove_v already_o the_o superiority_n of_o the_o apostle_n over_o the_o presbyter_n do_v not_o in_o the_o least_o diminish_v their_o power_n as_o such_o it_o be_v fit_a they_o shall_v act_v under_o the_o inspection_n of_o the_o apostle_n who_o be_v infallible_o assist_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n after_o a_o great_a deal_n of_o needless_a labour_n to_o himself_o and_o reader_n at_o length_n he_o grant_v 25._o p._n 25._o that_o timothy_n be_v ordain_v by_o the_o presbytery_n of_o which_o paul_n be_v the_o principal_a head_n here_o you_o have_v his_o own_o confession_n that_o timothy_n be_v ordain_v by_o the_o presbytery_n truth_n be_v great_a and_o will_v one_o time_n or_o other_o extort_v self-condemning_a testimony_n out_o of_o the_o mouth_n of_o adversary_n but_o he_o add_v that_o paul_n be_v the_o principal_a head_n of_o this_o presbytery_n head_n be_v a_o ambiguous_a word_n if_o he_o mean_v by_o it_o supreme_a governor_n it_o belong_v proper_o to_o jesus_n christ_n who_o be_v the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n and_o head_n over_o all_o thing_n to_o it_o eph._n 1.22_o &_o 5.23_o no_o apostle_n be_v ever_o call_v head_n much_o less_o principal_a head_n either_o of_o the_o church_n or_o of_o the_o presbytery_n in_o all_o the_o n._n testament_n it_o be_v a_o title_n the_o pope_n of_o rome_n affect_v if_o he_o mean_v a_o subordinate_a governor_n as_o i_o presume_v he_o do_v he_o be_v no_o more_o the_o head_n of_o this_o presbytery_n than_o of_o all_o other_o presbytery_n not_o only_o in_o church_n plant_v by_o he_o but_o in_o all_o other_o to_o who_o the_o spirit_n guide_v he_o his_o power_n be_v the_o same_o in_o rome_n and_o coloss_n where_o he_o find_v church_n establish_v by_o other_o as_o in_o ephesus_z or_o corinth_n where_o lie_v settle_v churches_n himself_o if_o the_o apostle_n join_v the_o presbytery_n with_o he_o in_o ordination_n as_o the_o rector_n confess_v he_o do_v it_o be_v sufficient_a to_o demonstrate_v that_o presbyter_n have_v a_o inherent_a power_n of_o ordain_v the_o apostle_n be_v precedent_n of_o the_o presbytery_n make_v no_o more_o for_o bishop_n than_o it_o do_v for_o presbyter_n for_o neither_o of_o they_o pretend_v to_o succeed_v the_o apostle_n in_o the_o extent_n of_o apostolical_a power_n and_o all_o presbytery_n have_v a_o moderator_n or_o precedent_n for_o order_n sake_n upon_o the_o whole_a matter_n it_o be_v clear_a to_o i_o 27._o p._n 27._o say_v mr._n g._n that_o the_o presbytery_n speak_v of_o 1_o tim._n 4.14_o include_v the_o apostle_n paul_n 1._o he_o tell_v we_o before_o that_o paul_n be_v include_v in_o the_o word_n by_o prophecy_n now_o he_o include_v he_o in_o the_o presbytery_n let_v we_o see_v what_o sense_n this_o interpretation_n make_v the_o gift_n that_o be_v in_o thou_o which_o be_v give_v thou_o by_o prophecy_n i._n e._n paul_n and_o silas_n with_o the_o lay_n on_o of_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o presbytery_n i._n e._n of_o paul_n and_o ordinary_a minister_n the_o gift_n according_a to_o this_o interpretation_n be_v give_v by_o the_o lay_n on_o of_o the_o hand_n of_o paul_n with_o the_o lay_n on_o of_o the_o hand_n of_o paul_n risum_fw-la teneatis_fw-la 2._o the_o apostle_n be_v distinguish_v from_o the_o presbytery_n act_v 15.23_o iv_o the_o four_o thing_n he_o have_v undertake_v be_v to_o consider_v paul_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d by_o prophecy_n 28._o p._n 28._o with_o the_o lay_n on_o of_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o fresbytery_n heace_n he_o infer_v that_o timothy_n be_v proper_o ordain_v by_o prophet_n in_o the_o presence_n or_o witness_n and_o with_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o presbyter_n 1._o j._n o._n prove_v in_o his_o plea_n p._n 47_o 48._o that_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d use_v promiscuous_o in_o the_o n._n t._n which_o mr._n g._n take_v no_o notice_n of_o 2._o himself_o apply_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d as_o well_o as_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d to_o paul_n by_o affirm_v that_o he_o be_v include_v in_o the_o presbytery_n 3._o he_o forget_v himself_o in_o say_v that_o timothy_n be_v proper_o ordain_v by_o prophet_n for_o he_o own_a p._n 25._o that_o he_o be_v ordain_v by_o the_o presbytery_n truth_n be_v one_o and_o the_o same_o but_o error_n be_v inconsistent_a with_o itself_o 4._o the_o lay_v on_o of_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o presbytery_n signify_v more_o than_o their_o presence_n witness_n and_o consent_n for_o the_o presence_n witness_n and_o consent_n of_o the_o people_n be_v requisite_a as_o he_o confess_v but_o they_o never_o lay_v on_o hand_n in_o ordination_n 5._o he_o make_v paul_n one_o of_o the_o presbytery_n the_o lay_v on_o of_o his_o hand_n according_a to_o this_o hypothesis_n signify_v no_o more_o than_o his_o presence_n and_o consent_n thus_o in_o deny_v ordination_n by_o presbyter_n he_o destroy_v apostolical_a ordination_n and_o consequent_o that_o which_o be_v episcopal_a he_o flurt_n at_o the_o learned_a and_o judicious_a dr._n owen_n who_o name_n will_v live_v in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n when_o such_o man_n as_o he_o be_v write_v in_o the_o dust_n he_o disingenious_o make_v the_o dr._n to_o say_v that_o we_o be_v justify_v by_o faith_n with_o good_a work_n 29._o p._n 29._o that_o faith_n be_v the_o instrument_n whereby_o justification_n be_v convey_v and_o good_a work_n wherewith_o it_o be_v confer_v he_o shall_v have_v show_v the_o place_n where_o dr._n owen_n say_v so_o but_o this_o he_o can_v not_o do_v the_o word_n be_v his_o own_o and_o easy_o betray_v the_o author_n though_o he_o will_v fain_o father_n they_o upon_o the_o doctor_n dr._n owen_n say_v according_a to_o the_o scripture_n that_o we_o be_v justisy_v by_o faith_n without_o work_n the_o rector_n make_v he_o to_o say_v we_o be_v justisy_v by_o faith_n with_o work_n in_o the_o next_o line_n he_o contradict_v himself_o and_o explain_v the_o drs._n with_o work_n by_o without_o work_n for_o he_o affirm_v that_o the_o presbyter_n contribute_v no_o more_o unto_o ordination_n than_o good_a work_n in_o the_o drs._n opinion_n do_v unto_o justification_n that_o be_v nothing_o at_o all_o 1._o he_o tell_v we_o once_o that_o the_o lay_v on_o of_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o presbytery_n signify_v ordination_n p._n 25._o afterward_o it_o signify_v only_o consent_v p._n 28._o and_o here_o it_o signify_v nothing_o at_o all_o we_o must_v crave_v the_o help_n of_o his_o learned_a neighbour_n who_o communicate_v a_o quotation_n in_o j._n oh_o book_n to_o he_o to_o reconcile_v he_o to_o himself_o 2._o it_o seem_v good_a work_n contribute_v something_o to_o our_o justification_n in_o the_o rector_n opinion_n he_o declare_v himself_o full_o of_o that_o opinion_n in_o the_o next_o paragraph_n and_o say_v he_o be_v so_o far_o of_o the_o drs._n mind_n that_o in_o justification_n faith_n be_v the_o first_o and_o chief_a instrument_n of_o conveyance_n this_o imply_v that_o good_a work_n be_v a_o secondary_a and_o subordinate_a cause_n of_o justification_n i_o will_v put_v this_o gentleman_n in_o mind_n of_o a_o passage_n or_o two_o in_o the_o book_n of_o homily_n st._n paul_n declare_v nothing_o here_o upon_o the_o behalf_n of_o man_n concern_v his_o justification_n but_o only_o a_o true_a and_o lively_a faith_n and_o yet_o that_o faith_n do_v not_o shut_v out_o repentance_n hope_n love_n dread_a and_o the_o fear_n of_o god_n to_o be_v join_v with_o faith_n in_o every_o man_n that_o be_v justify_v but_o it_o shut_v they_o out_o from_o the_o office_n of_o justify_v so_o that_o although_o they_o be_v all_o present_a together_o in_o he_o that_o be_v justify_v yet_o they_o justify_v not_o all_o together_o 1673._o together_o serm._n of_o salvat_fw-la part_v 1_o p._n 13._o edit_fw-la 1673._o in_o the_o second_o part_n of_o the_o same_o homily_n ib._n homily_n p._n 15._o ib._n we_o have_v this_o remarkable_a passage_n this_o faith_n the_o holy_a scripture_n teach_v we_o this_o be_v the_o strong_a rock_n and_o foundation_n of_o christian_a religion_n this_o doctrine_n all_o old_a and_o ancient_a author_n of_o christ_n church_n do_v approve_v this_o doctrine_n advance_v and_o fet_v forth_o the_o true_a glory_n of_o christ_n and_o beat_v down_o the_o vain_a glory_n of_o man_n this_o whosoever_o deni_v be_v not_o to_o be_v account_v a_o christian_a man_n nor_o for_o a_o fetter_n forth_o of_o christ_n glory_n but_o for_o a_o adversary_n to_o
the_o apostle_n must_v be_v presume_v to_o have_v do_v the_o same_o 1._o if_o the_o apostle_n do_v not_o appoint_v one_o presbyter_n as_o supreme_a to_o preside_v over_o the_o rest_n and_o to_o succeed_v he_o in_o the_o government_n of_o the_o presbyter_n the_o government_n by_o his_o own_o confession_n must_v lodge_v in_o the_o presbyter_n of_o the_o church_n in_o parity_n 2._o timothy_n and_o titus_n be_v not_o ordinary_a presbyter_n but_o extraordinary_a officer_n that_o be_v evangelist_n and_o as_o such_o be_v superior_a to_o presbyter_n as_o apostle_n and_o prophet_n be_v there_o be_v not_o the_o least_o hint_n in_o the_o epistle_n to_o timothy_n and_o titus_n that_o they_o be_v ordain_v to_o be_v the_o apostle_n successor_n in_o ephesus_n and_o crete_n 3._o the_o apostle_n do_v commit_v the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n of_o ephesus_n in_o his_o absence_n to_o the_o presbytery_n in_o a_o parity_n act_n 20.17_o 18._o and_o that_o when_o he_o be_v take_v his_o last_o leave_n of_o they_o without_o thought_n of_o see_v they_o any_o more_o v._o 25._o this_o be_v the_o proper_a season_n for_o he_o to_o provide_v a_o sirgle_n person_n to_o succeed_v he_o in_o the_o presidency_n over_o the_o presbyter_n of_o ephesus_n have_v such_o a_o presidency_n be_v of_o necessary_a and_o perpetual_a continuance_n in_o the_o church_n it_o be_v but_o rational_a to_o affirm_v that_o when_o the_o apostle_n take_v their_o final_a leave_n of_o any_o church_n than_o be_v the_o proper_a time_n to_o take_v care_n of_o its_o future_a government_n it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v imagine_v that_o the_o holy_a apostle_n will_v be_v want_v in_o their_o duty_n towards_o the_o church_n in_o such_o a_o conjuncture_n as_o this_o they_o be_v faithful_a steward_n of_o god_n house_n and_o give_v the_o necessary_a rule_n for_o its_o future_a government_n and_o conservation_n according_o the_o apostle_n be_v very_o particular_a and_o express_a in_o give_v direction_n about_o the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n of_o ephesus_n after_o his_o departure_n he_o send_v for_o the_o elder_n of_o ephesus_n preach_v his_o farewell_n sermon_n to_o they_o a_v 20.17_o 36._o in_o all_o which_o there_o be_v not_o one_o word_n of_o set_v a_o single_a person_n over_o they_o but_o the_o whole_a government_n of_o the_o church_n be_v commit_v to_o they_o in_o a_o state_n of_o parity_n and_o lest_o any_o shall_v think_v this_o be_v a_o prudential_a constitution_n he_o tell_v they_o this_o power_n be_v consign_v to_o they_o by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n who_o make_v they_o bishop_n to_o feed_v or_o rule_n the_o church_n of_o god_n v._o 28._o the_o elder_n to_o who_o the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n of_o ephesus_n be_v thus_o commit_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n take_v their_o solemn_a and_o final_a leave_n of_o paul_n with_o many_o tear_n sorrow_v most_o of_o all_o for_o the_o word_n which_o he_o speak_v that_o they_o shall_v see_v his_o face_n no_o more_o ver_fw-la 38._o whether_o he_o do_v return_v again_o be_v not_o material_a at_o all_o it_o be_v evident_a he_o think_v he_o shall_v not_o and_o the_o elder_n of_o ephesus_n think_v so_o also_o there_o be_v no_o one_o presbytery_n of_o which_o the_o apostle_n take_v such_o a_o solemn_a leave_n as_o he_o do_v of_o this_o and_o there_o be_v no_o doubt_n if_o it_o have_v be_v the_o mind_n of_o god_n that_o a_o single_a person_n shall_v be_v set_v over_o they_o but_o the_o apostle_n will_v have_v mention_v it_o at_o this_o time_n he_o tell_v they_o in_o his_o charge_n to_o they_o that_o he_o shun_v not_o to_o declare_v to_o they_o the_o whole_a counsel_n of_o god_n act_v 20.27_o and_o immediate_o add_v v._o 28._o that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n make_v they_o bishop_n of_o that_o flock_n this_o therefore_o be_v part_n of_o the_o council_n of_o god_n that_o the_o church_n be_v govern_v by_o the_o elder_n in_o parity_n if_o the_o superiority_n of_o bishop_n have_v be_v any_o part_n of_o the_o council_n of_o god_n the_o apostle_n will_v not_o have_v withhold_v it_o from_o the_o presbyter_n of_o ephesus_n at_o this_o time_n they_o that_o affirm_v that_o the_o government_n of_o this_o church_n be_v afterward_o change_v must_v bring_v as_o clear_a proof_n for_o it_o as_o we_o do_v for_o this_o establishment_n it_o be_v very_o plain_a and_o incontestable_a that_o the_o apostle_n leave_v the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n of_o ephesus_n in_o the_o presbyter_n of_o that_o church_n when_o he_o take_v his_o final_a leave_n of_o they_o and_o be_v it_o as_o plain_a that_o the_o first_o epistle_n to_o timothy_n upon_o which_o his_o episcopacy_n be_v found_v be_v write_v after_o this_o settlement_n of_o a_o govern_v presbytery_n which_o most_o ancient_a and_o modern_a chronologer_n except_o bishop_n pearson_n and_o two_o or_o three_o other_o affirm_v to_o be_v write_v before_o it_o be_v very_o evident_a that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n appoint_v the_o presbyter_n of_o ephesus_n the_o sole_a bishop_n of_o the_o church_n when_o paul_n bid_v they_o a_o final_a farewell_o and_o be_v it_o as_o evident_a that_o a_o evangelist_n as_o timothy_n be_v may_v be_v degrade_v from_o a_o extraordinary_a unfixed_a officer_n to_o a_o ordinary_a fix_a pastor_n in_o this_o establishment_n of_o presbytery_n without_o a_o superior_a bishop_n it_o be_v observable_a that_o 1._o it_o be_v a_o apostolical_a divine_a establishment_n the_o apostle_n be_v guide_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o his_o determination_n v._o 28._o 2._o it_o be_v the_o last_o establishment_n which_o he_o intend_v to_o make_v in_o that_o church_n for_o he_o have_v no_o thought_n of_o see_v they_o again_o 3._o it_o be_v intend_v for_o a_o perpetual_a establishment_n not_o only_o in_o the_o church_n of_o ephesus_n but_o in_o all_o other_o church_n mr._n g._n allow_v the_o government_n of_o this_o church_n to_o be_v a_o platform_n for_o other_o church_n p._n 45._o that_o it_o be_v perpetual_a appear_v 1._o because_o the_o apostle_n give_v they_o his_o last_o thought_n which_o be_v the_o same_o with_o his_o die_a thought_n for_o he_o positive_o tell_v they_o he_o shall_v see_v their_o face_n no_o more_o 2._o here_o be_v not_o one_o circumstance_n in_o the_o whole_a context_n that_o make_v for_o a_o temporary_a establishment_n if_o any_o say_v it_o be_v temporary_a he_o ought_v to_o prove_v it_o we_o may_v with_o much_o better_a reason_n affirm_v that_o the_o appoint_v of_o timothy_n a_o evangelist_n to_o settle_v some_o thing_n in_o ephesus_n in_o paul_n absence_n be_v temporary_a 3._o paul_n do_v not_o give_v the_o least_o hint_n in_o his_o whole_a discourse_n with_o the_o ephesian_a elder_n of_o any_o bishop_n he_o have_v set_v over_o they_o or_o that_o he_o intend_v to_o set_v one_o hereafter_o it_o be_v certain_a paul_n must_v needs_o know_v what_o sort_n of_o government_n god_n will_v have_v settle_v in_o his_o church_n after_o his_o departure_n we_o can_v imagine_v that_o he_o be_v ignorant_a of_o the_o pattern_n of_o god_n house_n the_o extraordinary_a gift_n of_o the_o spirit_n be_v not_o give_v they_o in_o vain_a it_o be_v to_o lead_v they_o into_o all_o truth_n now_o if_o the_o apostle_n know_v of_o this_o pretend_a future_a establishment_n of_o episcopacy_n how_o come_v he_o not_o to_o acquaint_v the_o presbyter_n with_o it_o he_o shall_v have_v tell_v they_o how_o they_o be_v to_o govern_v the_o church_n in_o subordination_n to_o their_o bishop_n present_a or_o future_a but_o not_o a_o word_n of_o all_o this_o in_o his_o whole_a discourse_n a_o certain_a evidence_n that_o it_o be_v the_o apostle_n mind_n and_o the_o mind_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n that_o the_o presbyter_n shall_v govern_v the_o church_n in_o common_a timothy_n be_v now_o present_a or_o not_o far_o off_o act_v 20.4_o 6._o why_o have_v not_o the_o apostle_n recommend_v the_o presbyter_n to_o his_o charge_n they_o want_v a_o present_a bishop_n according_a to_o mr._n g's_o hypothesis_n for_o the_o apostle_n be_v take_v his_o final_a leave_n of_o they_o what_o shall_v hinder_v his_o be_v set_v over_o they_o his_o year_n he_o be_v but_o young_a when_o the_o first_o epistle_n be_v write_v which_o suppose_v he_o bishop_n of_o ephesus_n 1_o tim._n 4.12_o there_o be_v prophecy_n concern_v he_o 1_o tim._n 1.18_o he_o have_v be_v ordain_v by_o prophecy_n 1_o tim._n 4.14_o and_o be_v there_o no_o prophecy_n of_o his_o be_v future_a bishop_n of_o ephesus_n if_o there_o be_v how_o come_v the_o apostle_n to_o suppress_v it_o in_o this_o necessary_a juncture_n when_o it_o so_o great_o concern_v the_o ephesian_a elder_n to_o know_v how_o the_o church_n of_o ephesus_n be_v to_o be_v govern_v after_o the_o apostle_n departure_n will_v not_o the_o elder_n of_o ephesus_n acquiesce_v in_o this_o determination_n of_o the_o apostle_n as_o his_o last_o and_o unalterable_a settlement_n
subordinate_a to_o the_o apostle_n act_n 15._o and_o so_o be_v the_o evangelist_n but_o can_v he_o produce_v any_o ordinary_a presbyter_n that_o be_v subordinate_a to_o other_o of_o the_o same_o order_n ignatius_n say_v he_o allow_v they_o a_o great_a stroke_n in_o order_v the_o affair_n of_o their_o church_n 77._o p._n 77._o but_o still_o in_o subjection_n to_o their_o bishop_n without_o who_o they_o can_v do_v nothing_o it_o do_v not_o appear_v that_o ignatius_n his_o bishop_n can_v do_v any_o thing_n without_o his_o presbyter_n no_o more_o than_o they_o can_v without_o he_o and_o long_o after_o his_o time_n the_o bishop_n have_v no_o power_n to_o determine_v church-matter_n without_o his_o presbyter_n as_o appear_v by_o that_o canon_n in_o the_o council_n of_o carthage_n let_v the_o bishop_n hear_v no_o man_n cause_n without_o the_o presence_n of_o his_o clergy_n otherwise_o his_o sentence_n shall_v be_v void_a unless_o it_o be_v confirm_v by_o the_o presence_n of_o his_o clergy_n 13._o clergy_n council_n cath._n iu._n can._n 13._o cyprian_n do_v nothing_o without_o the_o council_n of_o his_o presbyter_n and_o without_o the_o consent_n of_o his_o people_n 6._o people_n statuerim_fw-la nil_fw-la sine_fw-la concilio_n vestro_fw-la &_o sine_fw-la consensu_fw-la plebis_fw-la meae_fw-la privatâ_fw-la sentemiâ_fw-la gerere_fw-la cypr._n ep._n 6._o to_o be_v sure_a than_o the_o people_n and_o their_o bishop_n ordinary_o meet_v in_o one_o place_n ignatius_n frequent_o exhort_v the_o people_n to_o do_v nothing_o without_o their_o bishop_n presbyter_n and_o deacon_n in_o conjunction_n the_o bishop_n and_o his_o presbyter_n make_v one_o consistory_n the_o bishop_n say_v he_o preside_v in_o the_o place_n of_o god_n and_o the_o presbyter_n in_o the_o place_n of_o the_o council_n of_o the_o apostle_n 33._o apostle_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d magn._n p._n 33._o and_o a●_n little_a after_o he_o mention_n the_o complex_n spiritual_a crown_n of_o the_o presbytery_n who_o sit_v round_o about_o he_o in_o the_o church_n 37._o church_n p._n 37._o again_o let_v all_o reverence_n the_o deacon_n as_o the_o command_n of_o jesus_n christ_n aid_v the_o bishop_n as_o jesus_n christ_n who_o be_v the_o son_n of_o the_o father_n and_o the_o presbyter_n as_o the_o council_n of_o god_n and_o the_o conjunction_n of_o the_o apostle_n 48._o apostle_n ad_fw-la tralles_n p._n 48._o by_o these_o and_o many_o other_o passage_n in_o ignatius_n his_o epistle_n it_o be_v evident_a that_o the_o bishop_n and_o presbyter_n sit_v in_o council_n together_o and_o be_v only_o the_o guide_n of_o a_o parochial_a church_n in_o which_o the_o bishop_n do_v nothing_o without_o his_o presbyter_n nor_o they_o without_o he_o this_o agreement_n of_o the_o bishop_n and_o his_o presbyter_n ignatius_n compare_v to_o the_o string_n of_o a_o harp_n and_o add_v that_o under_o their_o joint_n conduct_v the_o whole_a church_n make_v a_o chorus_n a_o sacred_a choir_n and_o by_o their_o consent_a unity_n make_v a_o divine_a melody_n 19_o melody_n ad_fw-la ephes_n p_o 19_o this_o be_v agreeable_a to_o what_o jerom_n affirm_v that_o the_o churth_n be_v ancient_o govern_v communi_fw-la concilio_n presbyterorum_fw-la by_o the_o common_a council_n of_o the_o presbyter_n tit._n presbyter_n hier._n in_o ep._n ad_fw-la tit._n who_o have_v a_o moderator_n or_o precedent_n for_o order_n sake_n but_o without_o any_o jurisdiction_n over_o the_o other_o presbyter_n this_o moderator_n at_o the_o first_o be_v not_o so_o much_o as_o choose_v but_o the_o honour_n be_v devolve_v in_o course_n upon_o the_o senior_a presbyter_n and_o when_o he_o die_v the_o next_o to_o he_o succeed_v this_o be_v express_o arffirm_v by_o hilarius_n the_o deacon_n 4._o deacon_n ut_fw-la recedente_fw-la uno_fw-la sequens_fw-la ei_fw-la succedederet_fw-la hil._n in_o eph._n 4._o but_o the_o senior_a presbyter_n prove_v sometime_o not_o so_o fit_a for_o the_o place_n as_o he_o add_v they_o change_v the_o succession_n by_o seniority_n into_o that_o by_o election_n the_o presbyter_n choose_v the_o fit_a person_n to_o be_v their_o moderator_n or_o precedent_n as_o be_v do_v in_o all_o the_o presbytery_n of_o the_o reform_a church_n this_o precedent_n have_v no_o new_a ordination_n have_v no_o power_n over_o his_o brethren_n and_o be_v but_o primus_fw-la sacerdos_n the_o first_o presbyter_n as_o hilary_n affirm_v see_v this_o quotation_n more_o at_o large_a in_o j._n oh_o plea_n p._n 136._o 1.3_o 136._o mutata_fw-la este_fw-la ratio_fw-la ut_fw-la non_fw-la ordo_fw-la sed_fw-la meritum_fw-la crearet_fw-la episcopum_fw-la etc._n etc._n in_o eph._n 4._o &_o in_o 1_o tim._n 1.3_o thus_o it_o be_v at_o alexandria_n as_o jerom_n observe_v ad_fw-la evagr._fw-la by_o all_o which_o it_o appear_v that_o the_o primitive_a bishop_n be_v not_o of_o the_o same_o species_n with_o our_o modern_a bishop_n and_o that_o the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n by_o the_o presbyter_n under_o their_o respective_a moderator_n be_v most_o agreeable_a to_o the_o primitive_a practice_n he_o think_v that_o he_o have_v sufficient_o prove_v that_o timothy_n and_o titus_n be_v diocesan_n governor_n though_o not_o bishop_n in_o title_n 78._o title_n p._n 78._o i_o leave_v it_o to_o the_o impartial_a reader_n to_o consider_v of_o his_o proof_n and_o my_o answer_n as_o to_o timothy_n and_o titus_n i_o will_v add_v these_o few_o thing_n and_o so_o conclude_v this_o chapter_n 1._o it_o be_v certain_a there_o be_v a_o order_n of_o evangelist_n in_o the_o church_n ephes_n 4.11_o this_o all_o will_v acknowledge_v 2._o they_o be_v vnsix_v officer_n subordinate_a to_o the_o apostle_n and_o send_v by_o they_o to_o supply_v their_o absence_n in_o the_o church_n plant_v by_o they_o 1_o cor._n 3.6_o not_o as_o their_o state_v pastor_n for_o they_o have_v pastor_n and_o teacher_n resident_a with_o they_o but_o to_o guide_v the_o new_a pastor_n in_o faith_n worship_n and_o discipline_n during_o the_o present_a necessity_n until_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n be_v write_v for_o a_o complete_a and_o infallible_a directory_n unto_o all_o church_n unto_o the_o end_n of_o time_n the_o apostle_n themselves_o can_v not_o be_v every_o where_o and_o the_o ordinary_a minister_n will_v be_v often_o at_o a_o loss_n without_o their_o direction_n therefore_o it_o be_v necessary_a they_o shall_v entrust_v some_o person_n as_o delegate_n to_o go_v in_o their_o name_n and_o with_o full_a instruction_n to_o the_o church_n to_o settle_v direct_v and_o establish_v they_o some_o of_o these_o evangelist_n general_o attend_v the_o apostle_n that_o they_o may_v be_v assistant_n to_o they_o sometime_o they_o send_v they_o to_o one_o church_n sometime_o to_o another_o to_o make_v a_o short_a or_o a_o long_a stay_n as_o the_o circumstance_n of_o their_o work_n require_v and_o then_o to_o return_v again_o to_o the_o apostle_n that_o send_v they_o thus_o timothy_n be_v send_v to_o corinth_n 1_o cor._n 16.10_o &_o 4.17_o we_o find_v he_o with_o paul_n again_o when_o he_o write_v the_o second_o epistle_n to_o the_o corinthian_n 1_o cor._n 1.1_o at_o berea_n he_o be_v with_o paul_n and_o abode_n there_o still_o with_o silas_n act_v 17.14_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d as_o he_o do_v afterward_o at_o ephesus_n 1_o tim._n 1.3_o i_o beseech_v thou_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d to_o abide_v still_o but_o no_o more_o as_o bishop_n of_o ephesus_n than_o of_o berea_n and_o yet_o this_o be_v the_o great_a argument_n to_o prove_v he_o bishop_n of_o ephesus_n that_o paul_n beseech_v he_o to_o abide_v there_o it_o be_v true_a he_o soon_o leave_v berea_n and_o follow_v paul_n to_o athens_n act_v 17.15_o who_o companion_n he_o be_v nor_o be_v he_o to_o stay_v at_o ephesus_n but_o until_o paul_n come_v to_o he_o 1_o tim._n 3.14_o &_o 4.13_o and_o in_o the_o second_o epistle_n which_o be_v write_v not_o long_o after_o the_o first_o the_o apostle_n call_v he_o away_o to_o rome_n and_o send_v lychicus_fw-la another_o evangelist_n to_o ephesus_n 2_o tim._n 4.9.12.21_o in_o 1_o thess_n 1.1_o we_o find_v he_o in_o athens_n whence_o he_o be_v send_v to_o thessalonica_n and_o thence_o return_v back_o to_o athens_n 1_o thes_n 3.1_o 2_o 6._o after_o this_o he_o remove_v with_o paul_n to_o corinth_n act_v 18.5_o thence_o he_o accompany_v paul_n to_o asia_n and_o ephesus_n act_v 19.1_o thence_o he_o be_v send_v to_o macedonia_n v._o 21_o 22._o but_o it_o be_v tedious_a to_o follow_v he_o in_o all_o his_o travel_n to_o so_o many_o distant_a place_n he_o be_v express_o call_v a_o evangelist_n 2_o tim._n 4.5_o and_o no_o one_o else_o be_v express_o so_o call_v but_o philip_n act_v 21.8_o titus_n be_v such_o another_o unfixed_a officer_n he_o be_v paul_n partner_n and_o fellow-helper_n 2_o cor._n 8.23_o and_o seem_v most_o employ_v in_o the_o church_n of_o corinth_n 2_o cor._n 8.6.16_o &_o 7.6.13_o paul_n expect_v he_o at_o troas_n and_o not_o find_v he_o he_o have_v no_o rest_n
in_o his_o spirit_n but_o take_v his_o leave_n of_o they_o and_o go_v into_o macedonia_n 2_o cor._n 12.13_o we_o find_v he_o with_o paul_n at_o jerusalem_n gal._n 2.1_o 3._o and_o after_o his_o be_v in_o crete_n the_o apostle_n send_v for_o he_o to_o nicopolis_n titus_n 3.12_o we_o find_v he_o with_o paul_n at_o rome_n whence_o he_o send_v he_o to_o dalmatia_n 2_o tim._n 4.12_o and_o we_o hear_v no_o more_o of_o he_o 3._o evangelist_n be_v subordinate_a to_o the_o apostle_n and_o superior_a to_o presbyter_n eph._n 4.11_o they_o be_v the_o apostle_n colleague_n and_o companion_n and_o their_o authorize_v messenger_n to_o the_o church_n to_o set_v in_o order_n what_o be_v want_v in_o they_o and_o to_o instruct_v admonish_v and_o reprove_v the_o presbyter_n as_o there_o be_v occasion_n 4._o they_o have_v power_n to_o ordain_v minister_n where_o there_o be_v need_n of_o they_o this_o appear_v in_o eusebius_n who_o say_v of_o they_o that_o travel_v far_o from_o home_n they_o perform_v the_o office_n of_o evangelist_n 31._o eccl._n hist._n iii_o 31._o and_o preach_v christ_n to_o such_o as_o hear_v not_o of_o the_o faith_n and_o deliver_v unto_o they_o the_o scripture_n of_o the_o holy_a gospel_n with_o great_a application_n when_o they_o have_v lay_v the_o foundation_n of_o christian_a doctrine_n in_o certain_a strange_a place_n and_o ordain_v other_o pastor_n and_o commit_v the_o new_a convert_v to_o their_o care_n and_o conduct_v they_o go_v into_o other_o country_n and_o nation_n attend_v with_o the_o favour_n and_o power_n of_o god_n thus_o he_o timothy_n and_o titus_n who_o be_v both_o of_o they_o evangelist_n be_v entrust_v with_o the_o power_n of_o ordain_v we_o have_v already_o prove_v that_o ordinary_a presbyter_n have_v exercise_v this_o power_n much_o more_o may_v evangelist_n who_o be_v extraordinary_a officer_n 5._o evangelist_n be_v temporary_a officer_n in_o though_o church_n and_o be_v long_o since_o cease_v as_o apostle_n and_o prophet_n be_v 6._o timothy_n and_o titus_n be_v evangelist_n as_o we_o have_v prove_v and_o therefore_o no_o diocesan_n bishop_n it_o will_v be_v a_o degrade_n a_o extraordinary_a officer_n who_o power_n be_v general_a over_o all_o the_o church_n in_o subordination_n to_o the_o apostle_n to_o make_v a_o ordinary_a officer_n of_o he_o and_o to_o confine_v his_o power_n to_o one_o particular_a church_n it_o be_v like_o the_o degrade_n of_o the_o colonel_n of_o a_o regiment_n to_o be_v the_o captain_n of_o a_o single_a company_n or_o the_o confine_n of_o a_o diocesan_n bishop_n to_o a_o mean_a parochial_a cure_n mr._n g._n and_o some_o other_o will_v own_o they_o be_v evangelist_n and_o unfixed_a at_o first_o but_o that_o the_o apostle_n towards_o his_o latter_a end_n have_v make_v they_o bishop_n and_o that_o they_o be_v such_o when_o he_o write_v his_o epistle_n to_o they_o which_o be_v after_o his_o first_o imprisonment_n at_o rome_n this_o he_o undertake_v to_o prove_v in_o his_o next_o chapter_n chap._n iu._n the_o first_o epistle_n to_o timothy_n be_v write_v before_o paul_n imprisonment_n at_o rome_n acknowledge_v by_o the_o ancient_n and_o by_o the_o learned_a assertor_n of_o episcopacy_n bishop_n hall_n dr._n hammond_n etc._n etc._n deny_v by_o the_o rhemist_n bishop_n pearson_n etc._n etc._n paul_n journey_n to_o macedonia_n 1_o tim._n 1.3_o consider_v jerom_n vindicate_v reason_n to_o prove_v that_o the_o first_o epistle_n to_o timothy_n be_v write_v before_o paul_n first_o bond_n the_o second_o epistle_n write_v in_o his_o first_o bond_n a_o objection_n answer_v act_n 20.25_o consider_v one_o and_o the_o lead_a argument_n for_o timothy_n be_v be_v bishop_n of_o ephesus_n 79._o p._n 79._o say_v he_o be_v ground_v on_o 1_o tim._n 1.3_o i_o beseech_v thou_o to_o abide_v still_o at_o ephesus_n when_o i_o go_v to_o macedonia_n 1._o to_o abide_v still_o do_v not_o imply_v a_o continue_a residence_n timothy_n be_v say_v to_o abide_v still_o at_o berea_n where_o he_o make_v but_o a_o short_a stay_n act_n 17.14_o 15._o this_o argument_n will_v as_o soon_o prove_v he_o bishop_n of_o berea_n as_o bishop_n of_o ephesus_n 2._o his_o stay_n there_o be_v but_o short_a that_o be_v until_o the_o apostle_n come_v to_o he_o 1_o tim._n 3.14_o and_o 4.13_o mr._n g._n himself_o allow_v in_o p._n 90._o that_o the_o church_n of_o ephesus_n be_v govern_v by_o presbyter_n under_o paul_n whilst_o he_o be_v vigorous_a and_o active_a and_o have_v opportunity_n to_o oversee_v both_o the_o flock_n and_o the_o elder_n themselves_o the_o apostle_n be_v vigorous_a and_o active_a when_o he_o write_v this_o first_o epistle_n to_o timothy_n and_o he_o intend_v short_o to_o visit_v the_o flock_n and_o elder_n of_o ephesus_n therefore_o by_o his_o own_o confession_n timothy_n can_v not_o be_v bishop_n of_o ephesus_n when_o that_o epistle_n be_v write_v 3._o he_o be_v not_o fix_v as_o resident_n at_o ephesus_n for_o the_o apostle_n afterward_o call_v he_o to_o rome_n 2_o tim._n 4.9_o 21._o and_o send_v tychicus_n the_o evangelist_n to_o ephesus_n we_o do_v not_o read_v that_o timothy_n ever_o return_v to_o ephesus_n again_o thus_o we_o see_v the_o weakness_n of_o his_o lead_a argument_n as_o he_o call_v it_o by_o which_o we_o may_v judge_v of_o the_o rest_n he_o add_v that_o the_o dissenter_n to_o avoid_v the_o argument_n build_v upon_o 1_o tim._n 1.3_o and_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o epistle_n say_v that_o the_o first_o epistle_n to_o timothy_n be_v write_v before_o the_o meeting_n at_o miletus_n in_o which_o the_o apostle_n commit_v the_o flock_n to_o the_o elder_n of_o ephesus_n and_o not_o to_o timothy_n act_v 20.17_o 28._o our_o argument_n from_o act_n 20.17_o 28._o hold_n good_a though_o that_o epistle_n shall_v be_v write_v after_o as_o we_o have_v prove_v already_o in_o cap._n 3._o 2._o it_o be_v not_o the_o dissenter_n only_a as_o he_o unfair_o suggest_v that_o say_v that_o this_o epistle_n be_v write_v before_o the_o meeting_n at_o miletus_n it_o be_v the_o general_a and_o prevail_a opinion_n of_o the_o great_a part_n of_o chronologer_n ancient_a and_o modern_a the_o most_o learned_a asserter_n of_o episcopacy_n not_o except_v bishop_n hall_n be_v of_o this_o opinion_n 38._o opinion_n vindic_n p._n 97._o &_o diu._n right_a of_o episcop_n part_n 2d_o p._n 38._o so_o be_v dr._n hammond_n and_o grotius_n lud._n cap●llus_n dr._n lightfoot_n cary_n &c_n &c_n gothofredus_n quote_v athanasius_n baronius_n etc._n etc._n as_o of_o the_o same_o opinion_n the_o rhemist_n be_v sensible_a that_o this_o opinion_n be_v prejudicial_a to_o the_o cause_n of_o episcopacy_n and_o therefore_o they_o say_v though_o not_o positive_o that_o the_o first_o epistle_n to_o timothy_n be_v write_v after_o paul_n first_o imprisonment_n at_o rome_n when_o he_o be_v set_v at_o liberty_n tim._n liberty_n rhem._n test._n arg._n in_o 1_o tim._n they_o be_v follow_v by_o bishop_n pearson_n and_o by_o mr._n g._n only_o with_o this_o difference_n that_o the_o seminary_n at_o rheims_n deliver_v themselves_o more_o modest_o than_o the_o rector_n do_v they_o say_v it_o seem_v so_o the_o rector_n say_v he_o have_v demonstrate_v it_o one_o that_o have_v not_o read_v bishop_n pearson_n will_v think_v the_o rector_n very_o ingenuous_a in_o acknowledge_v that_o he_o be_v behold_v to_o the_o bishop_n for_o what_o he_o pretend_v to_o say_v on_o paul_n journey_n to_o macedonia_n mention_v in_o 1_o tim._n 1.3_o that_o miracle_n of_o his_o time_n say_v he_o 80._o p._n 80._o mean_v bishop_n pearson_n in_o his_o annal_n paulini_n have_v give_v we_o a_o plain_a account_n and_o proof_n thereof_o all_o that_o i_o pretend_v unto_o be_v to_o build_v on_o his_o foundation_n and_o to_o enlarge_v on_o what_o that_o excellent_a prelate_n have_v demonstrate_v in_o a_o few_o word_n thus_o the_o rector_n i_o will_v not_o dispute_v whether_o the_o learned_a bishop_n be_v the_o miracle_n of_o his_o time_n if_o he_o be_v miracle_n be_v grow_v very_o common_a in_o this_o last_o age_n for_o the_o bishop_n have_v many_o equal_n who_o learned_a work_n be_v nothing_o inferior_a to_o he_o i_o dare_v affirm_v that_o our_o rector_n be_v no_o miracle_n in_o architecture_n for_o he_o build_v very_o sorry_o on_o the_o bishop_n foundation_n instead_o of_o raise_v a_o superstructure_n he_o have_v rather_o disturb_v the_o foundation_n the_o learned_a bishop_n discourse_v distinct_o and_o clear_o the_o rector_n confuse_o and_o dark_o he_o refer_v to_o dr._n pearson_n annal_n paulini_n and_o pretend_v to_o enlarge_v on_o what_o the_o bishop_n have_v demonstrate_v in_o few_o word_n but_o take_v no_o notice_n of_o the_o bishop_n enlarge_n on_o that_o argument_n in_o his_o dissertation_n whence_o he_o borrow_a what_o he_o pretend_v to_o say_v on_o paul_n journey_n to_o macedonia_n but_o will_v have_v his_o reader_n believe_v the_o enlargement_n be_v his_o own_o see_v pear_n dissert_n
in_o his_o day_n some_o indiscreet_a person_n say_v he_o have_v be_v tell_v bold_n tell_v fort_n leg._n bold_n in_o open_a preach_n to_o use_v derogatory_n speech_n and_o censure_n of_o the_o church_n abroad_o and_o that_o so_o far_o as_o some_o of_o our_o man_n as_o i_o have_v hear_v ordain_v in_o foreign_a part_n have_v be_v pronounce_v to_o be_v no_o lawful_a minister_n 137._o minister_n resusc_n part_n i._n p._n 137._o the_o jus_fw-la divinum_fw-la of_o episcopacy_n begin_v to_o be_v urge_v about_o that_o time_n to_o the_o great_a joy_n and_o advantage_n of_o the_o popish_a party_n as_o appear_v by_o a_o letter_n to_o a_o popish_a peer_n in_o ireland_n from_o t._n white_n dat._n lond._n feb._n 12._o 1639._o in_o which_o be_v these_o word_n we_o be_v in_o a_o fair_a way_n ever_o long_o to_o assuage_v heresy_n and_o her_o episcopacy_n for_o exetor_n be_v book_n have_v do_v more_o for_o the_o catholic_n than_o they_o can_v have_v do_v themselves_o for_o have_v write_v that_o episcopacy_n in_o office_n and_o jurisdiction_n be_v absolute_o jure_fw-la divino_fw-la which_o be_v the_o old_a quarrel_n between_o our_o bishop_n and_o k._n h._n viii_o during_o his_o heresy_n then_o dispute_v upon_o which_o book_n do_v not_o a_o little_a trouble_n our_o adversary_n who_o declare_v this_o tenent_n of_o exetor_n be_v to_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o law_n of_o the_o land_n this_o letter_n be_v find_v with_o other_o paper_n at_o the_o take_n of_o droghedah_n after_o the_o rout_n of_o remines_n copia_fw-la vera_fw-la ab_fw-la origin_n ut_fw-la fuit_fw-la cum_fw-la hen._n midens_fw-la episcopo_fw-la the_o book_n which_o white_a refer_v to_o be_v bishop_n hall_n divine_a right_n of_o episcopacy_n which_o be_v alter_v and_o put_v into_o the_o form_n in_o which_o we_o now_o have_v it_o by_o archbishop_n laud._n bishop_n hall_n first_o draught_n call_v episcopacy_n a_o ancient_n holy_a and_o divine_a institution_n the_o archbishop_n direct_v he_o to_o alter_v it_o into_o so_o ancient_a as_o that_o it_o be_v of_o divine_a institution_n hall_n define_v episcopacy_n by_o be_v join_v with_o imparity_n and_o superiority_n of_o jurisdiction_n laud_n direct_v he_o to_o define_v it_o by_o a_o distinction_n of_o orden_n hall_n grant_v that_o the_o presbyterian_a government_n may_v be_v of_o use_n where_o episcopacy_n may_v not_o be_v have_v laud_n tell_v he_o this_o be_v of_o dangerous_a consequence_n and_o that_o we_o must_v not_o use_v any_o mince_a term_n nor_o hamper_v ourselves_o for_o fear_n of_o speak_v plain_a truth_n though_o it_o be_v against_o amsterdam_n or_o geneva_n the_o bishop_n of_o exon_n find_v good_a cause_n say_v my_o author_n 402._o author_n dr._n heyl._n life_n of_o a._n bish_n laud_n p._n 400_o 401_o 402._o to_o correct_v the_o obliquity_n of_o his_o opinion_n according_a to_o the_o rule_n of_o these_o animadversion_n bishop_n hall_n book_n be_v finish_v the_o archbishop_n read_v it_o over_o with_o care_n and_o diligence_n in_o the_o perusal_n of_o which_o he_o take_v notice_n among_o other_o thing_n that_o the_o strict_a superstition_n of_o the_o sabbatarian_o be_v but_o light_o touch_v at_o whereas_o he_o think_v that_o some_o smart_a plaster_n to_o that_o sore_o may_v have_v do_v no_o harm_n he_o observe_v also_o that_o he_o have_v pass_v by_o this_o point_n viz._n whether_o episcopacy_n be_v a_o order_n or_o a_o degree_n as_o not_o material_a whereas_o in_o the_o judgement_n of_o such_o learned_a man_n as_o he_o have_v consult_v it_o be_v the_o main_a ground_n of_o the_o whole_a cause_n and_o therefore_o desire_v he_o to_o alter_v it_o with_o his_o own_o pen._n but_o that_o which_o give_v he_o most_o offence_n be_v that_o the_o title_n of_o antichrist_n be_v positive_o and_o determinate_o bestow_v on_o the_o pope_n which_o he_o allow_v not_o of_o according_a to_o which_o good_a advice_n say_v dr._n heylin_n the_o bishop_n of_o exon_n qualify_v some_o of_o his_o expression_n and_o delete_v other_o ubi_fw-la supr_fw-la p._n 406._o it_o be_v remarkable_a that_o at_o the_o same_o time_n that_o the_o divine_a right_n of_o episcopacy_n begin_v to_o be_v assert_v here_o the_o divine_a right_n of_o the_o christian_a sabbath_n be_v call_v in_o question_n and_o the_o conscientious_a observer_n of_o it_o be_v brand_v with_o the_o odious_a name_n of_o sabbatarian_n at_o the_o same_o time_n also_o the_o old_a doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n that_o the_o pope_n be_v antichrist_n begin_v to_o be_v out_o of_o request_n 4._o this_o hypothesis_n condemn_v the_o late_a episcopal_a church_n of_o scotland_n which_o admit_v ordination_n by_o presbyter_n to_o be_v valid_a as_o dr._n burnet_n bishop_n of_o sarum_n affirm_v thus_o he_o the_o bishop_n of_o scotland_n never_o require_v the_o presbyterian_a minister_n there_o to_o take_v episcopal_a ordination_n they_o require_v they_o only_o to_o come_v and_o act_n with_o they_o in_o church-judicatories_a even_o archbishop_n sharp_a himself_o when_o he_o be_v to_o be_v consecrate_a archbishop_n of_o st._n andrews_n stand_v out_o for_o some_o time_n here_o in_o england_n before_o he_o will_v submit_v to_o take_v priest_n order_n no_o bishop_n during_o my_o stay_n in_o that_o kingdom_n ever_o do_v so_o much_o as_o desire_v any_o of_o the_o presbyterian_o to_o be_v re-ordained_n 1696_o re-ordained_n bishop_n of_o sarum_n be_v vindie_a p._n 84_o 85._o lond._n 1696_o the_o advance_n of_o a_o hypothesis_n so_o favourable_a to_o the_o romish_a church_n so_o destructive_a to_o the_o reform_a church_n abroad_o so_o inconsistent_a with_o the_o article_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n which_o mr._n g._n have_v subscribe_v and_o so_o contrary_a to_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o scottish_a bishop_n and_o the_o repeat_v declaration_n of_o several_a of_o our_o english_a bishop_n may_v tempt_v person_n to_o suspect_v the_o design_n of_o the_o book_n if_o not_o of_o the_o author_n but_o we_o will_v charitable_o hope_v he_o mean_v well_o and_o in_o a_o transport_n of_o zeal_n which_o exclude_v freedom_n of_o thought_n may_v easy_o overlook_a the_o fatal_a consequence_n of_o his_o indigested_a principle_n iv_o he_o tell_v we_o a_o long_a story_n in_o his_o preface_n of_o the_o occasion_n of_o his_o publish_n of_o his_o book_n p._n 1._o and_o 2._o and_o complain_v that_o his_o sermon_n of_o the_o consecration_n and_o holiness_n of_o church_n have_v not_o be_v answer_v by_o the_o dissenter_n and_o say_v he_o there_o be_v good_a reason_n for_o it_o which_o i_o shall_v not_o here_o repeat_v to_o repeat_v a_o thing_n not_o mention_v before_o be_v a_o little_a improper_a i_o confess_v there_o be_v good_a reason_n why_o that_o sermon_n have_v not_o be_v answer_v and_o that_o be_v his_o not_o print_v it_o let_v he_o publish_v it_o and_o he_o shall_v not_o long_o complain_v that_o that_o controversy_n be_v drop_v i_o be_o a_o stranger_n to_o that_o sermon_n but_o i_o expect_v he_o shall_v prove_v the_o consecration_n and_o holiness_n of_o church_n by_o the_o scripture_n for_o he_o allow_v pref._n p._n 13._o that_o we_o ought_v to_o be_v govern_v by_o scripture_n and_o to_o keep_v close_o to_o scripture-practice_n i_o be_o sure_a he_o can_v prove_v it_o from_o the_o new_a testament_n which_o be_v the_o peculiar_a law_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o rule_n of_o christian_n it_o do_v not_o appear_v that_o christ_n or_o his_o apostle_n ever_o consecrate_a any_o place_n of_o worship_n nor_o can_v he_o prove_v it_o from_o the_o old_a testament_n by_o the_o ceremonial_a law_n which_o in_o the_o main_a branch_n of_o it_o be_v more_o ancient_a than_o moses_n and_o expire_v with_o the_o jewish_a temple_n our_o public_a church_n be_v so_o far_o from_o be_v holy_a that_o they_o be_v unclean_a because_o the_o dead_a be_v bury_v there_o he_o that_o touch_v a_o grave_a be_v unclean_a by_o the_o old_a law_n num._n 19.16_o the_o jew_n bury_v their_o dead_a not_o in_o their_o temple_n or_o synagogue_n but_o in_o place_n appropriate_v to_o that_o use_n which_o they_o account_v unclean_a they_o bury_v ordinary_o without_o the_o city_n lu._n 7.12_o 323._o 7.12_o vid._n ligh_v vol._n ii_o p._n 323._o their_o synagogue_n which_o answer_n to_o our_o parish_n church_n be_v not_o consecrate_a as_o the_o temple_n be_v nor_o be_v there_o any_o law_n for_o the_o consecration_n of_o they_o nor_o of_o their_o divinity-school_n which_o they_o judge_v more_o holy_a than_o their_o synagogue_n 2._o synagogue_n maim_v in_o godw._n moses_n and_o aaron_n ii_o 2._o optatus_n observe_v that_o the_o donatist_n begin_v to_o bury_v in_o church_n in_o his_o time_n and_o add_v that_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a to_o bury_v in_o the_o house_n of_o god_n 36._o god_n ad_fw-la parm._n lib._n 3._o p._n 36._o he_o seem_v to_o refer_v to_o a_o law_n of_o gratian_n the_o emperor_n as_o baldwin_n observe_v in_o his_o annotation_n on_o optatus_n the_o pure_a age_n of_o
way_n of_o manage_v controversy_n calvin_n vindicated_n bishop_n lordly_a title_n consider_v the_o parallel_n between_o the_o canon_n in_o act_n 15._o and_o the_o english_a canon_n parish-minister_n have_v no_o power_n of_o discipline_n the_o waldenses_n have_v no_o superior_a bishop_n prove_v 1._o from_o their_o doctrine_n that_o bishop_n and_o presbyter_n be_v the_o same_o 2._o from_o their_o own_o testimony_n 3._o the_o testimony_n of_o f._n paul_n 4._o by_o several_a instance_n of_o ordination_n by_o their_o presbyter_n in_o england_n before_o the_o reformation_n of_o the_o uninterrupted_a succession_n of_o bishop_n p._n 1_o to_o 45._o chap._n ii_o whether_o the_o jewish_a church_n be_v the_o first_o establish_v church_n the_o levitical_a priesthood_n no_o pattern_n for_o gospel-minister_n clemens_n rom._n vindicated_n whether_o jesus_n christ_n model_v his_o church_n after_o the_o jewish_a pattern_n or_o leave_v his_o church_n in_o a_o state_n of_o oligarchy_n as_o our_o author_n say_v his_o first_o instance_n of_o ordination_n from_o act_n 1._o consider_v 2._o the_o ordination_n of_o the_o seven_o deacon_n they_o be_v minister_n of_o table_n not_o of_o the_o word_n and_o sacrament_n prove_v from_o scripture_n and_o antiquity_n objection_n answer_v 3._o his_o three_o instance_n of_o ordination_n from_o act_n 9.17_o consider_v 4._o his_o four_o from_o act_n 13.1_o 2_o 3._o this_o instance_n of_o ordination_n by_o presbyter_n vindicated_n the_o difference_n between_o apostle_n and_o prophet_n as_o state_v by_o he_o consider_v 5._o his_o five_o instance_n from_o act_n 14.13_o examine_v 6._o act_n 19.6_o 7._o consider_v 7.1_o cor._n 5.3_o 4_o 5._o vindicated_n 8.1_o tim._n 4.14_o for_o ordination_n by_o presbyter_n vindicated_n dr._n owen_n defend_v the_o rector_n unsound_a in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o justification_n 9.1_o pet._n 5.2_o vindicated_n p._n 45._o to_o 99_o chap._n iii_o the_o apostle_n leave_v the_o government_n of_o ephesus_n in_o the_o presbyter_n this_o establishment_n prove_v to_o be_v his_o last_o divine_a perpetual_a act_n 20._o explain_v this_o government_n never_o alter_v presbyter_n a_o divine_a remedy_n against_o schism_n superior_a bishop_n not_o the_o remedy_n timothy_n no_o diocesan_n bishop_n a_o unfixed_a evangelist_n of_o the_o asian_a angel_n not_o so_o call_v from_o the_o provincial_a guardian_n angel_n ignatius_n his_o bishop_n not_o diocesan_n titus_n no_o diocesan_n bishop_n presbyter_n be_v ruler_n p._n 99_o to_o p._n 121._o chap._n iu._n the_o first_o epistle_n to_o timothy_n be_v write_v before_o paul_n imprisonment_n at_o rome_n acknowledge_v by_o the_o ancient_n and_o by_o the_o learned_a asserter_n of_o episcopacy_n bp._n hall_n dr._n hammond_n &c_n &c_n deny_v by_o the_o rhemist_n bp._n pearson_n etc._n etc._n paul_n journey_n to_o macedonia_n 1_o tim._n 1.3_o consider_v jerom_n vindicated_n reason_n to_o prove_v that_o the_o first_o epistle_n to_o timothy_n be_v write_v before_o paul_n first_o bond_n the_o second_o epistle_n write_v in_o his_o first_o bond_n a_o objection_n answer_v act_n 20.25_o consider_v p._n 121._o to_o p._n 141._o chap._n v._n of_o evangelist_n whether_o they_o be_v fix_v neg._n act_v 21.8_o consider_v timothy_n and_o titus_n unfixed_a hilarius_n his_o account_n of_o evangelist_n eusebius_n testimony_n vindicated_n mark_v no_o fix_a evangelist_n chrysostom_n account_n of_o evangelist_n agree_v with_o eusebius_n p._n 141._o to_o p._n 151._o chap._n vi_o of_o parish-discipline_n presbyter_n have_v power_n of_o government_n 1._o j._n oh_o first_o argument_n for_o ordination_n by_o presbyter_n viz._n the_o identity_n of_o bishop_n and_o presbyter_n acknowledge_v 1_o tim._n 5.17_o consider_v 1_o tim._n 1.3_o do_v not_o prove_v timothy_n bp._n of_o ephesus_n dr._n whittaker_n vindicated_n ignatius_n one_o altar_n explain_v the_o extent_n of_o the_o church_n of_o ephesus_n a_o objection_n answer_v rev._n 5.11_o vindicated_n dr._n lightfoot'_v notion_n of_o angel_n vindicated_n 2._o j._n oh_o second_v argument_n for_o ordination_n by_o presbyter_n and_o three_o argument_n vindicated_n presbyter_n succeed_v the_o apostle_n ignatius_n and_o ireneus_fw-la vindicated_n more_o testimony_n to_o the_o same_o effect_n p._n 151._o to_o p._n 190._o errata_fw-la page_n 11._o marg._n after_o 80._o read_v 1._o p._n 12._o m._n for_o 1235._o r._n 1245._o p._n 14._o m._n for_o 5.30_o r._n 530._o p._n 26._o m._n f._n p._n 14._o r._n p._n 13_o 14._o p._n 35._o l._n 25._o r._n pope_n casualty_n p._n 46_o l._n 20._o f._n 24._o r._n 26._o p._n 53._o l._n 22._o f._n 72._o r._n 73._o p._n 63._o m._n f._n clerios_fw-la r._n clericis_fw-la p._n 67._o l._n 13._o deal_n a._n l._n 15_o r._n resolve_v p._n 87._o l._n 6._o r._n sanhedrin_n p._n 89._o l._n 11._o f._n of_o r._n at_o p._n 100_o l._n 10._o f._n 18._o r._n 28._o p._n 104._o l._n 3._o r._n story_n p._n 106._o l._n 31._o r._n presbyter_n p._n 109._o l._n 38._o r._n mal._n 2.1.7_o p._n 111._o l._n 38._o r._n diocese_n p._n 120._o l._n 7._o r._n 2_o cor._n 2.12_o 13._o p._n 122._o l._n 15._o r._n goncession_n p._n 140._o l._n 13._o r._n you_o p._n 143._o l._n 13._o r._n cretensis_n p._n 148._o l._n 3.15_o r._n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d &_o l._n 30._o p._n 149._o l._n 15._o r._n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d p._n 151._o l._n 22._o r._n crambe_n p._n 153._o l._n 8._o r._n there_o p._n 157._o l._n 12._o r._n apostle_n p._n 160._o l._n 2._o f._n 22._o r._n 2.2_o l._n ult_n r._n a_o p._n 172._o l._n 36._o f._n dot_z r._n not_o p._n 175._o l._n 8._o r._n conduct_v a_o defence_n of_o scripture-ordination_a etc._n etc._n chap._n i._n the_o dissenter_n justify_v in_o their_o way_n of_o manage_n controversy_n calvin_n vindicated_n bishop_n lordly_a title_n consider_v the_o parallel_n between_o the_o canon_n in_o act_n 15._o and_o the_o english_a canon_n parish-minister_n have_v no_o power_n of_o discipline_n the_o waldenses_n have_v no_o superior_a bishop_n prove_v 1._o from_o their_o doctrine_n 2._o from_o their_o own_o testimony_n 3._o from_o f._n paul_n testimony_n 4._o by_o several_a instance_n of_o ordination_n by_o their_o presbyter_n in_o england_n before_o the_o reformation_n of_o the_o uninterrupted_a succession_n of_o bishop_n before_o he_o enter_v upon_o his_o subject_n he_o desire_v his_o common_a reader_n to_o observe_v the_o unfair_a way_n the_o dissenter_n have_v in_o manage_v controversy_n 2._o pref._n p._n 2._o 1._o do_v they_o pick_v up_o imperfect_a note_n of_o sermon_n preach_v a_o year_n or_o two_o before_o and_o take_v upon_o they_o to_o confute_v they_o when_o the_o author_n be_v dead_a and_o can_v vindicate_v themselves_o this_o be_v a_o little_a unfair_a but_o he_o know_v who_o do_v so_o when_o he_o preach_v his_o sermon_n of_o consecration_n in_o answer_n to_o a_o sermon_n of_o mr._n baldwin_n under_o the_o fictitious_a name_n of_o calvin_n as_o i_o be_o tell_v because_o forsooth_o calvus_n be_v bald_a and_o vincentio_n be_v wine_n and_o so_o you_o have_v the_o english_a of_o calvin_n que_fw-fr baldwine_n doubtless_o so_o learned_a a_o etymologist_n can_v give_v a_o reason_n why_o the_o odd_a epithet_n of_o bald_n be_v attribute_v to_o wine_n i_o be_o apt_a to_o think_v calvin_n himself_o as_o learned_a as_o he_o be_v never_o think_v of_o this_o rare_a etymon_n of_o his_o name_n but_o to_o return_v to_o our_o subject_n 2._o do_v the_o dissenter_n use_v to_o lodge_v their_o manuscript_n in_o some_o friend_n hand_n with_o a_o charge_n that_o none_o shall_v see_v they_o except_o they_o undertake_v to_o answer_v they_o and_o promise_v to_o return_v they_o the_o same_o day_n this_o be_v a_o unfair_a way_n of_o manage_v controversy_n and_o it_o be_v much_o more_o unfair_a for_o a_o man_n to_o triumph_v that_o a_o manuscript_n clog_v with_o inch_n unreasonable_a condition_n be_v not_o answer_v the_o rector_n can_v name_v the_o unfair_a man_n that_o have_v thus_o manage_v the_o controversy_n of_o the_o consecration-sermon_n mention_v before_o 3._o or_o do_v the_o dissenter_n pretend_v to_o answer_v book_n and_o leave_v the_o great_a part_n of_o they_o unanswered_a he_o know_v who_o do_v so_o also_o and_o insinuate_v in_o his_o title_n page_n as_o if_o he_o have_v answer_v the_o whole_a when_o indeed_o deed_n it_o be_v far_o otherwise_o this_o be_v a_o unfair_a way_n of_o manage_v controversy_n which_o somebody_o be_v guilty_a of_o but_o let_v we_o hear_v how_o he_o prove_v his_o charge_n i._o in_o most_o of_o their_o book_n be_v the_o argument_n what_o it_o will_v pref._n pref._n they_o represent_v we_o as_o arminian_o say_v he_o person_n that_o have_v a_o sore_a place_n complain_v they_o be_v hurt_v if_o one_o do_v but_o touch_v they_o this_o charge_n of_o arminianism_n be_v either_o true_a or_o false_a if_o true_a confess_v it_o and_o give_v glory_n to_o god_n if_o false_a disprove_v it_o i_o doubt_v the_o rector_n can_v acquit_v himself_o whatever_o other_o do_v for_o
passage_n be_v a_o little_a unlucky_o produce_v for_o 1._o it_o over-throws_a the_o notion_n of_o the_o learned_a assertor_n of_o episcopacy_n that_o a_o diocese_n be_v the_o low_a species_n of_o a_o church_n and_o that_o particular_a congregation_n be_v but_o oratory_n and_o no_o church_n a_o bishop_n and_o a_o church_n be_v relative_n but_o eusebius_n speak_v of_o church_n of_o alexandria_n therefore_o there_o must_v be_v bishop_n of_o alexandria_n not_o one_o bishop_n and_o this_o agreeable_a enough_o to_o the_o apostolical_a platform_n who_o appoint_v several_a bishop_n in_o one_o city_n act_v 20.17_o 28._o phil._n 1.1_o 2._o mark_n be_v a_o evangelist_n a_o extraordinary_a unfixed_a officer_n eph._n 4.11_o 1_o pet._n 5.13_o eusebius_n call_v he_o peter_n companion_n and_o a_o evangelist_n ibid._n hist_o 11.14.23_o ibid._n 3._o anianus_n succeed_v mark_v the_o evangelist_n in_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o church_n of_o alexandria_n not_o as_o a_o bishop_n of_o a_o superior_a order_n to_o the_o presbyter_n there_o but_o as_o a_o honourable_a precedent_n in_o their_o assembly_n such_o a_o moderator_n as_o the_o reform_a church_n have_v in_o their_o synod_n and_o assembly_n without_o power_n of_o jurisdiction_n over_o his_o colleague_n and_o that_o he_o be_v no_o more_o 130._o cap._n to_o p._n 126._o 130._o j._n o._n have_v prove_v at_o large_a in_o his_o plea_n out_o of_o jerom_n and_o eutychius_n patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n where_o we_o have_v a_o clear_a proof_n of_o presbyter_n ordain_v for_o almost_o two_o hundred_o year_n together_o the_o rector_n do_v not_o judge_v it_o adviseable_a to_o meddle_v with_o j._n oh_o remark_n upon_o the_o church_n of_o alexandria_n either_o he_o have_v read_v that_o chapter_n in_o j._n oh_o book_n or_o he_o have_v not_o if_o he_o have_v he_o be_v inexcusable_a if_o not_o he_o shall_v read_v book_n before_o he_o undertake_v to_o answer_v they_o prov._n 18.13_o he_o that_o answer_v a_o matter_n before_o he_o hear_v or_o understand_v it_o it_o be_v folly_n and_o shame_n unto_o he_o 4._o moreover_o so_o great_a a_o multitude_n say_v the_o rector_n out_o of_o euseb_n there_o embrace_v the_o faith_n etc._n etc._n he_o suppress_v the_o rest_n of_o the_o sentence_n which_o be_v thus_o that_o even_o philo_n judge_v it_o worth_a while_n to_o describe_v their_o way_n of_o live_v our_o author_n will_v persuade_v we_o by_o this_o half_a sentence_n that_o there_o be_v vast_a number_n of_o convert_v in_o alexandria_n in_o mark_n be_v time_n but_o leave_v out_o the_o rest_n by_o a_o cunning_a etc._n etc._n for_o he_o know_v the_o invalidity_n of_o euseb_n reason_n that_o philo_n have_v describe_v the_o christian_n in_o egypt_n whereas_o the_o truth_n be_v he_o write_v of_o the_o essenes_n and_o not_o of_o the_o christian_n as_o the_o learned_a have_v prove_v this_o i_o note_v only_o by_o the_o by_o as_o a_o instance_n of_o this_o gentleman_n unfairness_n in_o quote_v author_n otherwise_o i_o be_o not_o concern_v in_o the_o number_n of_o the_o alexandrian_a convert_v for_o as_o they_o increase_v there_o and_o in_o other_o place_n they_o multiply_v into_o more_o church_n who_o have_v pastor_n assign_v they_o with_o power_n of_o discipline_n over_o their_o respective_a flock_n in_o short_a the_o instance_n of_o the_o alexandrian_a bishop_n make_v altogether_o for_o we_o for_o he_o be_v but_o the_o chief_a presbyter_n as_o a_o archdeacon_n be_v the_o chief_a deacon_n choose_v and_o name_v by_o the_o presbyter_n without_o any_o consecration_n and_o in_o his_o room_n the_o presbyter_n ordain_v another_o as_o j._n o._n have_v prove_v in_o his_o plea_n mr._n g._n in_o the_o next_o place_n show_v the_o parallel_n between_o their_o church_n government_n and_o that_o of_o the_o apostle_n our_o episcopal_a government_n say_v he_o be_v establish_v upon_o certain_a canon_n and_o law_n make_v and_o consent_v unto_o by_o the_o convocation_n consist_v of_o bishop_n and_o presbyter_n and_o by_o the_o multitude_n of_o believer_n that_o be_v their_o representative_n in_o parliament_n and_o thus_o it_o be_v in_o the_o council_n of_o jerusalem_n act_v 15._o let_v we_o a_o little_a consider_v this_o paragraph_n 1._o i_o expect_v he_o will_v have_v say_v the_o episcopal_a government_n be_v establish_v upon_o the_o word_n of_o god_n but_o he_o ingenious_o confess_v the_o truth_n of_o the_o matter_n that_o it_o be_v establish_v upon_o certain_a canon_n and_o law_n of_o humane_a devise_v we_o conceive_v the_o law_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o apostle_n contain_v in_o the_o new_a testament_n sufficient_a for_o the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n 2._o he_o make_v the_o multitude_n of_o believer_n in_o jerusalem_n to_o be_v as_o the_o representative_n of_o the_o people_n in_o parliament_n many_o of_o our_o learned_a antiquary_n have_v industrious_o labour_v to_o search_v into_o the_o original_a of_o parliament_n some_o conceive_v they_o owe_v their_o beginning_n to_o the_o norman_n some_o to_o the_o saxon_n other_o derive_v they_o high_o all_o confess_v the_o rise_v of_o they_o like_o the_o head_n of_o nilus_n very_o obscure_a but_o this_o gentleman_n by_o a_o unparalleled_a felicity_n of_o invention_n have_v find_v they_o in_o the_o council_n at_o jerusalem_n act_v 15._o where_o no_o body_n before_o ever_o dream_v of_o they_o however_o i_o be_o glad_a to_o find_v he_o speak_v any_o thing_n in_o favour_n of_o parliament_n for_o some_o year_n ago_o when_o they_o be_v out_o of_o request_n he_o advance_v the_o prerogative_n to_o that_o degree_n that_o parliament_n the_o bulwark_n of_o the_o subject_n liberty_n be_v very_o insignificant_a thing_n with_o he_o i_o will_v give_v a_o few_o instance_n 1._o he_o will_v exempt_v the_o clergy_n from_o the_o power_n of_o parliament_n in_o point_n of_o tax_n we_o the_o clergy_n say_v he_o be_v hook_a in_o 4._o three_o sermon_n of_o subjection_n pr._n 1683_o pref._n p._n 4._o i_o know_v not_o how_o to_o pay_v tax_n without_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o convocation_n 2._o he_o will_v not_o allow_v the_o aggrieved_a subject_n the_o benefit_n of_o petition_v and_o addressing_z their_o prince_n especial_o when_o he_o be_v under_o some_o disadvantage_n 3._o he_o make_v the_o king_n in_o effect_n the_o sole_a proprietor_n of_o our_o estate_n and_o say_v 11_o sermon_n 1._o p._n 11_o we_o must_v supply_v his_o occasion_n the_o five_o hundred_o at_o once_o i._n e._n a_o house_n of_o commons_o shall_v forbid_v we_o because_o our_o gold_n and_o silver_n bear_v his_o image_n and_o superscription_n 13._o p._n 13._o the_o meaning_n be_v this_o the_o king_n have_v power_n to_o tax_n we_o without_o the_o consent_n of_o parliament_n 4._o he_o add_v and_o to_o this_o i._o e._n to_o supply_v the_o king_n without_o the_o consent_n of_o parliament_n we_o be_v bind_v in_o conscience_n though_o the_o prince_n shall_v be_v a_o usurper_n and_o a_o tyrant_n 15._o p._n 13_o 14_o 15._o nay_o say_v our_o author_n a_o violent_a and_o original_o unjust_a power_n by_o success_n become_v a_o legal_a and_o righteous_a authority_n 5._o he_o complain_v that_o the_o right_n of_o the_o people_n be_v too_o much_o swell_v their_o property_n too_o much_o enlarge_v their_o liberty_n too_o much_o extend_v 17._o p._n 17._o this_o be_v in_o the_o year_n 1683._o when_v the_o popish_a plot_n have_v be_v stifle_v sham-plot_n set_v on_o foot_n for_o the_o destruction_n of_o the_o best_a patriot_n the_o right_n and_o franchise_n of_o city_n and_o corporation_n undermine_v and_o violate_v parliament_n disgrace_v popery_n and_o slavery_n break_v in_o irresistible_o upon_o we_o under_o the_o conduct_n and_o influence_n of_o the_o then_o duke_n of_o york_n 6._o he_o affirm_v that_o the_o prince_n be_v accountable_a to_o none_o but_o god_n for_o any_o misgovernment_n nay_o he_o be_v in_o effect_n continue_v he_o the_o sole_a sovereign_a power_n if_o he_o please_v to_o usurp_v and_o exercise_v it_o nor_o can_v the_o subject_a conscientious_o resist_v he_o 21._o p._n 21._o 7._o he_o think_v it_o be_v one_o main_a ground_n of_o political_a government_n to_o deprive_v the_o subject_a from_o be_v his_o own_o judge_n and_o asserter_n of_o his_o own_o privilege_n 8._o 22._o p._n 22._o he_o conceive_v the_o king_n coronation_n oath_n be_v a_o voluntary_a act_n of_o grace_n unto_o which_o he_o be_v not_o oblige_v by_o the_o fundamental_a constitution_n 23._o p._n 23._o 9_o if_o a_o prince_n shall_v not_o give_v this_o assurance_n it_o be_v my_o judgement_n say_v he_o he_o be_v not_o oblige_v to_o govern_v strict_o by_o the_o present_a law_n ibid._n ibid._n i_o doubt_v i_o have_v tire_v the_o reader_n with_o these_o political_a maxim_n sibthorp_n and_o mainwaring_n be_v dull_a fellow_n to_o this_o grand_a master_n of_o politic_n who_o have_v leave_v it_o whole_o to_o his_o prince_n good_a nature_n whether_o he_o will_v make_v use_n of_o his_o multitude_n of_o believer_n
mat_n 18.15_o 16_o 17._o 1_o cor._n 5.2_o cor._n 3.6_o his_o fancy_n that_o our_o minister_n ask_v leave_v of_o the_o lay-elders_a to_o suspend_v be_v a_o great_a mistake_n though_o common_a sense_n may_v teach_v he_o that_o two_o or_o three_o experience_a person_n of_o the_o congregation_n who_o he_o style_v lay-elders_a in_o conjunction_n with_o the_o minister_n be_v more_o competent_a judge_n of_o offence_n within_o the_o congregation_n than_o a_o lay-chancellor_n who_o live_v at_o a_o distance_n and_o be_v a_o mere_a stranger_n and_o usual_o make_v the_o best_a advantage_n of_o his_o office_n without_o any_o great_a regard_n to_o the_o salvation_n of_o soul_n he_o complain_v that_o the_o dissenter_n call_v they_o priest_n in_o contempt_n 13._o p._n 13._o though_o the_o word_n he_o but_o presbyter_n contract_v 1._o i_o know_v no_o reason_n why_o this_o gentleman_n shall_v be_v offend_v that_o we_o call_v they_o by_o a_o name_n which_o themselves_o be_v so_o fond_a of_o the_o word_n priesthood_n and_o priest_n be_v use_v five_o or_o six_o time_n in_o the_o form_n of_o ordination_n and_o the_o word_n minister_n be_v change_v by_o the_o reformer_n of_o the_o common_a prayer_n in_o 1662._o into_o that_o of_o priest_n at_o least_o in_o five_o place_n in_o the_o absolution_n in_o the_o response_n in_o the_o litany_n and_o at_o the_o communion_n etc._n etc._n 2._o admit_v it_o to_o be_v a_o contraction_n of_o presbyter_n we_o must_v consider_v word_n non_fw-la a_o quo_fw-la sed_fw-la ad_fw-la quid_fw-la as_o the_o schoolman_n speak_v not_o as_o they_o do_v original_o signify_v but_o as_o they_o do_v at_o present_a it_o be_v certain_a that_o the_o learned_a translator_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n never_o render_v the_o greek_a presbyter_n by_o priest_n in_o english_a and_o they_o have_v reason_n for_o it_o because_o the_o word_n priest_n in_o common_a use_n signify_v the_o sacrifice_a priest_n of_o the_o law_n who_o name_n be_v never_o in_o the_o new_a testament_n give_v to_o minister_n of_o the_o church_n as_o dr._n fulk_n observe_v against_o the_o rhemish_a seminary_n 4._o rhem._n in_o act_n 14._o s._n 4._o who_o quarrel_n with_o our_o first_o reformer_n for_o translate_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d elder_a and_o not_o priest_n the_o hebrew_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o the_o greek_a 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v general_o translate_v priest_n in_o our_o english_a bibles_n and_o they_o proper_o signify_v sacrifice_a prieft_n our_o author_n confess_v 14._o pref._n p._n 14._o that_o it_o be_v very_o requisite_a that_o we_o shall_v not_o know_v of_o any_o interruption_n in_o the_o succession_n of_o holy_a order_n but_o it_o be_v infinite_a satisfaction_n when_o we_o have_v a_o moral_a assurance_n that_o there_o have_v be_v none_o j._n o._n have_v prove_v in_o his_o plea_n that_o the_o succession_n have_v be_v interrupt_v 178._o p._n 168._o to_o 178._o and_o that_o it_o be_v moral_o impossible_a by_o this_o principle_n for_o any_o man_n to_o know_v himself_o to_o be_v a_o true_a minister_n of_o christ_n but_o our_o rector_n never_o take_v notice_n of_o it_o not_o unlike_o some_o sort_n of_o disputant_n who_o resolve_v to_o hold_v the_o conclusion_n let_v what_o will_v come_v of_o the_o premise_n he_o that_o have_v moral_a assurance_n that_o there_o have_v be_v no_o interruption_n which_o beget_v in_o the_o rector_n infinite_a satisfaction_n must_v be_v sure_a that_o he_o who_o ordain_v he_o be_v ordain_v by_o a_o canonical_a bishop_n that_o that_o bishop_n ordination_n be_v not_o void_a by_o canon_n particular_o he_o must_v be_v sure_a to_o know_v he_o come_v not_o in_o by_o simony_n that_o he_o be_v not_o a_o heretic_n or_o erroneous_a in_o the_o fundamental_o or_o ordain_v by_o a_o bishop_n out_o of_o his_o own_o province_n he_o must_v know_v that_o all_o the_o bishop_n successive_o from_o the_o apostle_n time_n by_o who_o he_o derive_v his_o claim_n be_v thus_o ordain_v one_o interruption_n spoil_v the_o whole_a line_n he_o must_v be_v able_a to_o disprove_v all_o the_o interruption_n mention_v by_o historian_n he_o must_v prove_v that_o sergius_n the_o ii_o not_o obtain_v the_o popedom_n by_o magie_n 742._o naucl._n p._n 742._o which_o he_o himself_o confess_v he_o do_v that_o liberius_n do_v not_o subscribe_v the_o arian_n confession_n in_o the_o council_n of_o sirmium_n that_o pope_n honorius_n in_o the_o second_o general_n council_n be_v wrongful_o condemn_v for_o a_o heretic_n that_o marcellinus_n be_v no_o idolater_n nor_o celestine_n a_o nestorian_a heretic_n that_o the_o charge_n of_o simony_n put_v in_o against_o the_o english_a bishop_n 1405._o vide_fw-la fox_n acts-ad_a a._n d._n 1405._o scarce_o one_o except_v among_o king_n henry_n ivth_n bishop_n be_v false_a if_o any_o one_o of_o these_o be_v true_a as_o all_o may_v be_v for_o aught_o we_o know_v to_o the_o contrary_a and_o a_o thousand_o the_o like_a the_o succession_n of_o ordain_v bishop_n be_v interrupt_v and_o the_o ordination_n of_o all_o that_o derive_v from_o they_o be_v a_o nullity_n see_v the_o learned_a reason_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o worcester_n against_o this_o succession_n 299._o iren._n p._n 299._o the_o scripture_n no_o where_n mention_v this_o succession_n where_o be_v the_o succession_n of_o the_o jewish_a high-priest_n when_o the_o roman_a governor_n set_v up_o who_o they_o please_v and_o change_v they_o annual_o without_o regard_n to_o the_o divine_a law_n see_v john_n 11.51_o 3._o joseph_n antiq_fw-la xviii_o 3._o where_o shall_v we_o find_v the_o succession_n when_o the_o woman_n be_v in_o the_o wilderness_n and_o the_o witness_n slay_v gospel_n ordinance_n be_v plain_a thing_n and_o not_o clog_v with_o insuperable_a difficulty_n but_o so_o much_o be_v say_v to_o this_o subject_a in_o j._n oh_o plea_n that_o it_o be_v needless_a to_o add_v more_o to_o justify_v their_o ordination_n say_v mr._n g._n by_o the_o example_n of_o the_o lollard_n 15._o pref._n p._n 15._o be_v but_o to_o talk_v of_o yesterday_o of_o those_o who_o appear_v not_o in_o the_o world_n till_o about_o henry_n iii_n reign_n 1._o j._n o._n give_v about_o twelve_o instance_n of_o ordination_n by_o presbyter_n 125._o plea_n cap._n x._o p._n 125._o all_o more_o ancient_a than_o this_o of_o the_o follower_n of_o wickliff_n our_o author_n according_a to_o his_o great_a candour_n overlook_v all_o the_o rest_n and_z attack_n only_o this_o late_a instance_n and_o why_o this_o that_o he_o may_v say_v it_o be_v but_o of_o yesterday_n and_o yet_o his_o yesterday_n be_v above_o four_o hundred_o year_n ago_o for_o king_n henry_n iii_o dye_v in_o the_o year_n 1272._o 2._o the_o lollard_n as_o they_o be_v call_v in_o contempt_n be_v famous_a witness_n against_o antichristian_a error_n in_o their_o time_n and_o abundance_n of_o they_o seal_v their_o testimony_n with_o their_o blood_n we_o can_v therefore_o judge_v so_o light_o of_o their_o practice_n as_o the_o rector_n do_v it_o be_v true_a they_o labour_v under_o great_a difficulty_n as_o he_o observe_v but_o that_o be_v not_o the_o reason_n of_o presbyter_n ordain_v among_o they_o but_o their_o assert_v a_o inherent_a power_n in_o presbyter_n as_o such_o to_o ordain_v as_o j._n o._n have_v prove_v out_o of_o walsingham_n hist_n p._n 339._o in_o the_o very_a place_n which_o he_o animadvert_v upon_o but_o it_o be_v not_o his_o interest_n to_o take_v notice_n of_o it_o 3._o this_o instance_n be_v the_o more_o considerable_a because_o the_o lollard_n be_v the_o offspring_n of_o the_o ancient_n waldenses_n as_o perrin_n observe_v in_o england_n 3_o hist_o wald._a lib._n 1._o c_o 3_o say_v he_o they_o be_v call_v lollard_n from_o one_o lollard_n who_o teach_v there_o the_o persecute_a waldenses_n be_v scatter_v flee_v into_o provence_n and_o the_o alps_o some_o into_o calabria_n bohemia_n polonia_n and_o into_o britain_n as_o thuanus_n observe_v pref._n lib._n v._o ad_fw-la a._n d._n 1550._o pref._n so_o that_o this_o be_v a_o further_a confirmation_n that_o the_o waldenses_n have_v no_o bishop_n of_o the_o present_a english_a species_n but_o say_v our_o author_n 16._o p._n 15_o and_o 16._o as_o for_o waldenses_n or_o vaudois_n have_v have_v no_o other_o minister_n than_o presbyter_n ordain_v by_o presbyter_n for_o near_a five_o hundred_o year_n past_a as_o j._n o._n affirm_v it_o may_v prove_v one_o and_o not_o the_o least_o of_o his_o mistake_n when_o i_o shall_v here_o have_v set_v down_o what_o a_o learned_a neighbour_n of_o i_o communicate_v to_o i_o he_o tell_v i_o that_o he_o find_v in_o the_o history_n of_o the_o church_n of_o bohemia_n that_o the_o brethren_n of_o bohemia_n suspect_v the_o validity_n of_o ordination_n by_o presbyter_n send_v unto_o the_o waldenses_n a._n d._n 1467._o michael_n zamburgius_n their_o rector_n with_o two_o other_o these_o find_v stephen_n the_o waldensian_a bishop_n who_o with_o another_o bishop_n and_o
some_o minister_n create_v zamburgius_n and_o his_o two_o companion_n bishop_n confer_v on_o they_o the_o power_n to_o ordain_v minister_n this_o be_v sufficient_a say_v he_o to_o make_v a_o man_n doubt_v j._n oh_o quotation_n this_o quotation_n which_o mr._n g._n borrow_a of_o his_o learned_a neighbour_n and_o triumph_n in_o as_o a_o wonderful_a discovery_n of_o the_o state_n of_o the_o waldenses_n he_o may_v have_v find_v in_o j._n oh_o plea_n p._n 157._o quote_v out_o of_o the_o history_n of_o bohemia_n to_o which_o he_o refer_v his_o reader_n in_o the_o margin_n of_o his_o book_n the_o rector_n be_v a_o singular_a man_n for_o answer_v book_n who_o must_v be_v oblige_v to_o his_o learned_a neighbour_n for_o a_o quotation_n which_o any_o common_a reader_n can_v find_v in_o the_o book_n which_o he_o undertake_v to_o answer_v a_o man_n who_o read_v book_n with_o so_o little_a observation_n may_v be_v presume_v to_o answer_v they_o with_o lèss_a judgement_n the_o reader_n may_v see_v the_o remark_n upon_o that_o story_n in_o j._n oh_o plea_n which_o may_v convince_v he_o that_o the_o waldensian_a bishop_n be_v only_o the_o senior_a pastor_n with_o who_o the_o power_n of_o ordination_n be_v entrust_v for_o order_n sake_n as_o be_v do_v here_o in_o the_o late_a time_n of_o presbytery_n and_o be_v still_o both_o here_o and_o in_o the_o foreign_a reform_a church_n in_o all_o ordination_n by_o presbyter_n there_o be_v a_o moderator_n or_o precedent_n who_o be_v the_o chief_a manager_n of_o the_o action_n for_o order_n sake_n but_o in_o conjunction_n with_o his_o brethren_n over_o who_o he_o claim_v no_o jurisdiction_n or_o superiority_n in_o power_n this_o be_v the_o state_n of_o the_o waldenses_n their_o bishop_n be_v only_o nominal_a and_o titular_a but_o have_v no_o power_n over_o their_o brethren_n they_o be_v only_o for_o order_n sake_n the_o principal_a manager_n of_o ordination_n this_o appear_v 1._o because_o it_o be_v their_o receive_a doctrine_n that_o all_o presbyter_n be_v in_o a_o state_n of_o parity_n to_o this_o purpose_n they_o speak_v in_o a_o certain_a confession_n of_o their_o faith_n 13._o perr_n hist_o i._o 13._o art_n v._o we_o hold_v that_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o church_n ought_v not_o to_o have_v any_o superiority_n over_o the_o clergy_n aeneas_n silvias_n who_o write_v a_o book_n of_o their_o doctrine_n dogm_n inter_fw-la sacerdotes_fw-la nullum_fw-la discrimen_fw-la boh._n hist_o de_fw-fr vald._n dogm_n report_v this_o concern_v they_o that_o they_o affirm_v the_o roman_a bishop_n to_o be_v equal_a to_o other_o bishop_n and_o that_o between_o priest_n there_o be_v no_o difference_n the_o same_o be_v affirm_v concern_v they_o by_o nauclerus_fw-la he_o represent_v they_o say_v that_o all_o priest_n be_v equal_a 47._o chronog_n vol._n 2._o gen._n 47._o and_o it_o be_v not_o any_o superior_a dignity_n but_o the_o merit_n of_o their_o conversation_n that_o advance_v some_o above_o other_o this_o be_v the_o constant_a doctrine_n of_o our_o english_a apostle_n john_n wickliff_n 1389._o vide_fw-la hist_n arg._n ad_fw-la ann._n dom_fw-la 1389._o and_o his_o follower_n as_o walsingham_n note_n in_o several_a place_n this_o also_o be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o bohemian_o who_o be_v enlighten_v by_o wickliff_n book_n the_o taborite_n in_o their_o confession_n say_v that_o the_o confer_v of_o order_n only_o by_o bishop_n 23._o exit_fw-la consuetudine_fw-la habertur_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la lyd._n wald._n p._n 23._o and_o that_o they_o have_v great_a authority_n than_o other_o minister_n be_v not_o from_o any_o faith_n or_o authority_n of_o the_o scripture_n but_o from_o the_o custom_n of_o the_o church_n the_o bishop_n they_o receive_v from_o the_o waldenses_n be_v make_v by_o two_o of_o their_o titular_a bishop_n bohem._n hist_o of_o the_o persec_n of_o bohem._n and_o some_o presbyter_n which_o bespeak_v they_o to_o be_v no_o superior_a order_n of_o minister_n for_o presbyter_n can_v make_v bishop_n of_o the_o english_a species_n one_o of_o the_o article_n against_o john_n hus_n the_o bohemian_a martyr_n be_v that_o he_o affirm_v that_o all_o priest_n be_v of_o like_a power_n constant_n act_n and_o mon._n in_o conc._n constant_n and_o that_o the_o reservation_n of_o the_o casualty_n the_o order_n of_o bishop_n and_o the_o consecration_n of_o priest_n be_v invent_v only_o for_o covetousness_n 2._o that_o they_o have_v no_o real_a bishop_n superior_a to_o presbyter_n be_v evident_a from_o their_o own_o testimony_n the_o papist_n misrepresent_v they_o as_o some_o other_o will_v do_v now_o that_o they_o have_v bishop_n to_o who_o they_o pay_v a_o mighty_a deference_n this_o be_v most_o false_a 10._o hist_o wald._a l._n 10._o as_o perrin_n evince_v out_o of_o their_o own_o write_n the_o monk_n rainerius_n say_v he_o report_v many_o thing_n touch_v the_o vocation_n of_o the_o pastor_n of_o the_o waldenses_n which_o never_o be_v as_o that_o which_o be_v impose_v upon_o they_o that_o they_o have_v one_o great_a bishop_n and_o two_o follower_n which_o he_o call_v the_o elder_a sou_n and_o the_o young_a and_o a_o deacon_n that_o he_o lay_v his_o hand_n on_o other_o with_o sovereign_a authority_n and_o send_v they_o whither_o he_o think_v good_a like_o a_o pope_n that_o they_o have_v no_o such_o bishop_n he_o prove_v out_o of_o the_o book_n of_o the_o pastor_n george_n maurel_n and_o peter_n mascon_n who_o give_v this_o account_n of_o their_o discipline_n the_o last_o that_o be_v receive_v or_o ordain_v be_v to_o do_v nothing_o without_o the_o leave_n and_o licence_n of_o their_o seniors_n receive_v or_o ordain_v before_o they_o as_o also_o they_o that_o be_v first_o ought_v not_o to_o attempt_v any_o thing_n without_o the_o approbation_n of_o their_o companion_n to_o the_o end_n that_o all_o thing_n may_v be_v do_v among_o we_o in_o order_n the_o reader_n may_v note_v here_o 1._o that_o the_o waldensian_a bishop_n be_v only_o the_o seniour_n pastor_n 2._o that_o these_o have_v no_o power_n over_o other_o minister_n 3._o that_o they_o can_v not_o put_v forth_o any_o act_n of_o government_n without_o the_o approbation_n of_o their_o brethren_n so_o that_o the_o waldensian_a church_n be_v govern_v by_o the_o common_a council_n of_o the_o presbyter_n or_o pastor_n 4._o all_o this_o be_v for_o order_n sake_n i_o leave_v it_o to_o the_o impartial_a to_o judge_n whether_o this_o sort_n of_o government_n have_v any_o thing_n of_o the_o form_n of_o our_o episcopal_a government_n these_o testimony_n be_v sufficient_a to_o satisfy_v unprejudiced_a person_n that_o the_o waldenses_n have_v no_o bishop_n superior_a to_o presbyter_n but_o i_o will_v add_v a_o few_o more_fw-mi ex_fw-la abundanti_fw-la 3._o that_o they_o have_v no_o bishop_n in_o a_o proper_a sense_n appear_v by_o father_n paul_n description_n of_o they_o the_o people_n of_o the_o valley_n be_v a_o part_n of_o the_o waldenses_n who_o four_o hundred_o year_n since_o 1563._o since_o he_o end_v his_o history_n with_o the_o year_n 1563._o forsake_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o persecution_n flee_v into_o polonia_n germany_n puglia_n provence_n and_o some_o of_o they_o into_o the_o valley_n of_o mountsenis_n lucerna_fw-la angronia_fw-la perosa_fw-la and_o st._n martin_n these_o have_v always_o continue_v in_o their_o separation_n with_o certain_a minister_n of_o their_o own_o who_o they_o call_v pastor_n when_o the_o doctrine_n of_o zuinglius_fw-la be_v plant_v in_o geneva_n do_v present_o unite_v themselves_o with_o those_o as_o agree_v with_o they_o in_o point_n of_o doctrine_n and_o principal_a rite_n 1559_o hist._n of_o c._n of_o trent_n lib._n v._o ad_fw-la a._n d._n 1559_o thus_o he_o observe_v in_o this_o quotation_n 1._o he_o ascribe_v to_o the_o waldenses_n certain_a minister_n not_o bishop_n who_o they_o call_v pastor_n if_o there_o have_v be_v any_o superior_a bishop_n among_o they_o so_o exact_a a_o historian_n will_v not_o have_v omit_v they_o 2._o he_o say_v they_o agree_v in_o doctrinos_n and_o rite_n with_o those_o of_o geneva_n 3._o they_o present_o unite_v with_o they_o by_o reason_n of_o this_o agreement_n i_o hope_v the_o rector_n will_v not_o affirm_v that_o the_o protestant_n of_o geneva_n have_v bishop_n no_o more_o have_v the_o waldenses_n who_o agree_v with_o they_o in_o rite_n and_o doctrine_n and_o among_o other_o doctrine_n in_o this_o of_o the_o parity_n of_o bishop_n and_o presbyter_n and_o so_o ready_o unite_v with_o they_o i_o doubt_v it_o will_v not_o be_v so_o easy_a to_o reconcile_v this_o gentleman_n to_o the_o doctrine_n and_o rite_n of_o geneva_n to_o be_v sure_a than_o his_o notion_n of_o episcopacy_n be_v very_o different_a from_o those_o of_o the_o anti-popish_a waldenses_n 4._o that_o they_o have_v no_o bishop_n may_v be_v further_o evidence_v by_o their_o ordination_n here_o in_o england_n which_o be_v by_o presbyter_n and_o not_o by_o bishop_n walsingham_n say_v 1389_o
his_o ipse_fw-la dixit_fw-la for_o proof_n and_o then_o all_o your_o doubt_n will_v vanish_v he_o confess_v that_o the_o apostle_n may_v just_o admonish_v and_o commend_v timothy_n 49._o p._n 49._o the_o scope_n of_o his_o former_a chapter_n be_v to_o prove_v the_o presbyter●_n be_v subject_a to_o the_o apostle_n and_o therefore_o be_v not_o supreme_a governor_n now_o he_o own_v timothy_n to_o be_v subject_a to_o the_o apostle_n so_o that_o his_o argument_n that_o the_o presbyter_n have_v no_o power_n of_o government_n because_o subject_a to_o the_o apostle_n be_v throw_v out_o of_o door_n by_o himself_o have_v he_o be_v so_o kind_a as_o to_o insert_v this_o concession_n in_o its_o proper_a place_n he_o will_v have_v spare_v we_o the_o trouble_n of_o several_a remark_n upon_o the_o former_a chapter_n he_o pick_v out_o of_o paul_n be_v epistle_n to_o timothy_n the_o particular_a rule_n and_o order_n 50._o p._n 49_o 50._o which_o be_v prescribe_v unto_o he_o for_o the_o discharge_n of_o his_o episcopal_a office_n the_o several_a power_n commit_v to_o timothy_n in_o this_o epistle_n he_o may_v execute_v as_o he_o be_v a_o evangelist_n 2_o tim._n 4_o 5._o and_o assistant_n of_o paul_n in_o his_o apostolical_a function_n and_o as_o his_o delegate_n to_o order_n and_o regulate_v the_o church_n it_o be_v timothy_n be_v part_n to_o see_v to_o the_o qualification_n of_o those_o who_o be_v to_o be_v ordain_v at_o ephesus_n 50._o p._n 50._o if_o this_o be_v the_o proper_a work_n of_o a_o bishop_n how_o come_v our_o bishop_n to_o depute_v this_o work_n to_o one_o of_o their_o presbyter_n at_o his_o death_n he_o leave_v a_o successor_n with_o the_o same_o power_n 55._o p._n 55._o timothy_n be_v a_o evangelist_n a_o extraordinary_a officer_n eph._n 4.5_o 11._o do_v he_o leave_v successor_n with_o the_o same_o extraordinary_a power_n if_o evangelist_n one_o species_n of_o extraordinary_a officer_n have_v successor_n why_o shall_v not_o apostle_n and_o prophet_n also_o have_v successor_n assign_v they_o apostle_n prophet_n and_o evangelist_n be_v alike_o extraordinary_a and_o superior_a to_o pastor_n and_o teacher_n the_o ordinary_a officer_n of_o christ_n church_n no_o reason_n can_v be_v give_v why_o one_o sort_n of_o extraordinary_a officer_n shall_v be_v continue_v more_o than_o the_o rest_n which_o be_v confess_o cease_v but_o let_v we_o hear_v his_o proof_n 1._o it_o be_v no_o way_n likely_a but_o that_o timothy_n be_v express_o impower_v by_o st._n paul_n to_o provide_v for_o the_o future_a government_n of_o the_o church_n and_o perhaps_o his_o commission_n be_v in_o that_o 2_o tim._n 2.2_o or_o if_o not_o yet_o he_o will_v of_o his_o own_o accord_n settle_v it_o upon_o the_o same_o bottom_n that_o himself_o have_v receive_v it_o from_o the_o apostle_n something_o he_o will_v say_v but_o know_v not_o what_o i_o expect_v a_o clear_a proof_n but_o we_o be_v put_v off_o with_o a_o perhaps_o it_o be_v so_o or_o so_o or_o so_o one_o way_n or_o other_o it_o must_v be_v it_o be_v likely_a he_o be_v impower_v to_o provide_v for_o the_o future_a government_n of_o the_o church_n paul_n provide_v for_o it_o in_o act_n 20.28_o his_o commission_n in_o 1_o tim._n 22.11_o be_v to_o commit_v the_o thing_n that_o he_o have_v hear_v of_o paul_n to_o faithful_a man_n which_o shall_v be_v able_a to_o teach_v other_o also_o be_v this_o a_o commission_n to_o ordain_v bishop_n be_v all_o teacher_n bishop_n the_o bishop_n in_o ephesus_n act_v 20.28_o be_v but_o mere_a teacher_n with_o he_o and_o now_o the_o teacher_n in_o ephesus_n be_v ordain_v bishop_n the_o bishop_n which_o the_o holy_a ghost_n make_v in_o ephesus_n he_o degrade_v into_o ordinary_a teacher_n who_o have_v no_o ordain_v power_n and_o now_o when_o it_o serve_v his_o turn_n he_o advance_v the_o teacher_n ordain_v by_o timothy_n into_o the_o order_n of_o superior_a bishop_n but_o timothy_n will_v of_o his_o own_o accord_n settle_v the_o government_n as_o he_o receive_v it_o he_o receive_v the_o power_n of_o a_o evangelist_n which_o be_v temporary_a as_o be_v that_o of_o the_o apostle_n and_o prophet_n 2._o timothy_n leave_v a_o successor_n 56._o p._n 56._o because_o christ_n direct_v his_o message_n to_o the_o angel_n of_o the_o church_n in_o the_o singular_a number_n if_o that_o church_n have_v be_v govern_v by_o a_o presbytery_n the_o message_n must_v have_v be_v express_v in_o the_o plural_a 1._o angel_n be_v a_o metaphorical_a term_n and_o be_v general_o apply_v to_o the_o heavenly_a spirit_n which_o be_v minister_a spirit_n to_o the_o heir_n of_o salvation_n heb._n 1.14_o so_o that_o this_o title_n denote_v a_o ministry_n rather_o than_o degree_n of_o superiority_n 2._o angel_n be_v often_o take_v collective_o and_o seldom_o personal_o in_o the_o mysterious_a book_n of_o the_o revelation_n rev._n 9.11_o &_o 14.6_o 8_o 9_o and_o so_o be_v star_n use_v which_o be_v the_o same_o with_o angel_n rev._n 1.20_o &_o 12.1_o &_o 8.10_o &_o 9.1_o they_o be_v mystical_a term_n and_o no_o clear_a consequence_n can_v be_v deduce_v from_o they_o austin_n in_o his_o disputation_n with_o the_o donatist_n except_v against_o mystical_a figurative_a scripture_n and_o require_v some_o clear_a text_n that_o carry_v their_o own_o evidence_n with_o they_o xix_o they_o haec_fw-la mystica_fw-la sunt_fw-la opertasunt_fw-la figurata_fw-la sunt_fw-la aliquid_fw-la manifestum_fw-la quod_fw-la interpret_v non_fw-la egeat_fw-la stagitamus_fw-la de_fw-fr unit_fw-la eccl._n cap._n xix_o the_o epistle_n be_v dedicate_v to_o all_o the_o church_n as_o well_o as_o to_o the_o angel_n and_o by_o the_o same_o reason_n must_v be_v direct_v to_o all_o the_o minister_n as_o well_o as_o to_o one_o can_v it_o be_v imagine_v that_o the_o spirit_n shall_v speak_v to_o all_o the_o church_n and_o not_o to_o all_o the_o minister_n 3._o there_o be_v several_a bishop_n in_o ephesus_n act_v 20.28_o and_o doubtless_o all_o of_o they_o be_v concern_v in_o christ_n message_n though_o it_o may_v be_v direct_v to_o one_o as_o precedent_n or_o moderator_n for_o order_n sake_n but_o mr._n g._n will_v never_o be_v able_a to_o prove_v that_o one_o angel_n have_v jurisdiction_n over_o the_o rest_n 4._o if_o there_o be_v any_o thing_n of_o certainty_n in_o the_o celestial_a hierarchy_n which_o be_v describe_v by_o the_o supposititious_a dionysius_n the_o order_n of_o angel_n strict_o call_v so_o be_v the_o low_a of_o all_o the_o rest_n 9_o rest_n extremo_fw-la loco_fw-la inter_fw-la coelestes_fw-la essentias_fw-la angelicam_fw-la proprietam_fw-la obtinent_fw-la de_fw-fr coel._n hierar_fw-it cap._n 9_o how_o come_v that_o to_o be_v the_o high_a order_n among_o ecclesiastical_a angel_n which_o be_v the_o low_a among_o celestial_a argel_n he_o add_v the_o reason_n why_o it_o be_v say_v angel_n in_o the_o singular_a number_n because_o say_v he_o there_o be_v a_o opinion_n current_a in_o those_o day_n that_o every_o province_n have_v his_o peculiar_a guardian_n angel_n deut._n 32.8_o in_o the_o lxx_o dan._n 12.1_o &_o 10.12_o 13._o 1._o the_o current_a opinion_n of_o a_o provincial_a guardian_n angel_n be_v very_o doubtful_a at_o the_o best_a and_o without_o foundation_n in_o the_o scripture_n he_o quote_v 2._o the_o seventy_o interpreter_n render_v deut._n 32.8_o he_o set_v the_o bound_n of_o the_o people_n accordirg_n to_o the_o number_n of_o the_o angel_n of_o god_n whereas_o according_a to_o the_o hebrew_n it_o shall_v be_v according_a to_o the_o number_n of_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n they_o seem_v to_o allude_v to_o the_o jewish_a fabulous_a tradition_n concern_v the_o seventy_o angel_n set_v over_o the_o seventy_o nation_n of_o the_o world_n 402._o world_n light_n vol._n ii_o p._n 402._o 3._o according_a to_o this_o allusion_n the_o rector_n will_v have_v the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o constitute_v but_o one_o bishop_n for_o one_o province_n or_o nation_n and_o but_o seventy_o for_o all_o the_o nation_n of_o the_o world_n but_o the_o holy_a ghost_n who_o be_v no_o friend_n to_o fabulous_a tradition_n mention_n seven_o angel_n in_o one_o province_n namely_o the_o pronconsular_a asia_n and_o there_o be_v as_o many_o in_o every_o church_n as_o there_o be_v presbyter_n therein_o 4._o be_v it_o not_o more_o probable_a that_o the_o spirit_n allude_v to_o the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o argel_n of_o the_o church_n as_o the_o jew_n call_v the_o public_a minister_n of_o every_o synagogue_n 133._o synagogue_n light_n vol._n ii_o p._n 133._o in_o conformity_n to_o the_o language_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n job_n 33.23_o hag._n 1.13_o mal._n 21.7_o he_o be_v the_o messenger_n of_o the_o lord_n of_o host_n the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d messenger_n or_o angel_n lxx_o angel_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d mal._n 2.7_o in_o lxx_o be_v take_v collective_o for_o all_o teach_v priest_n mal._n 3.1_o 8._o &_o 2.7_o if_o angel_n be_v take_v collective_o by_o malachi_n
why_o not_o by_o john_n also_o i_o appeal_v to_o the_o learned_a reader_n whether_o be_v most_o probable_a that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n shall_v allude_v to_o provincial_a angel_n the_o doubtful_a minister_n of_o providence_n under_o that_o denomination_n or_o to_o the_o synagogue-angel_n the_o know_a minister_n of_o sacred_a thing_n 3._o his_o three_o reason_n to_o prove_v that_o timothy_n leave_v a_o episcopal_a successor_n be_v take_v from_o ignatius_n his_o epistle_n to_o that_o church_n 59_o p._n 59_o in_o which_o he_o name_v onesimus_n their_o bishop_n 1._o he_o know_v that_o the_o learned_a be_v not_o agree_v whether_o the_o epistle_n of_o ignatius_n be_v genuine_a or_o no_o mouns_o daille_n have_v write_v a_o learned_a dissertation_n to_o prove_v they_o spurious_a doct._n pearson_n have_v learned_o defend_v they_o le_fw-fr roque_n have_v with_o great_a judgement_n answer_v the_o learned_a bishop_n 2._o if_o ignatius_n be_v genuine_a which_o be_v very_o doubtful_a it_o shall_v seem_v that_o in_o his_o time_n the_o name_n of_o bishop_n which_o the_o holy_a ghost_n give_v to_o all_o presbyter_n in_o common_a begin_v to_o be_v appropriate_v to_o the_o first_o or_o chief_a presbyter_n who_o for_o order_n sake_n preside_v over_o the_o rest_n and_o have_v the_o honour_n of_o the_o chief_a place_n in_o their_o assembly_n and_o of_o moderate_v the_o debate_n of_o the_o presbytery_n but_o without_o any_o power_n of_o jurisdiction_n or_o government_n over_o his_o brethren_n this_o be_v the_o primitive_a bishop_n as_o j._n o._n have_v prove_v in_o his_o plea_n p._n 136._o 139._o out_o of_o hilarius_n etc._n etc._n 3._o ignatius_n his_o bishop_n be_v but_o the_o chief_a pastor_n of_o a_o church_n that_o ordinary_o assemble_v together_o for_o personal_a communion_n as_o will_v appear_v to_o any_o impartial_a person_n that_o read_v these_o epistle_n with_o observation_n congregational_a or_o parochial_a bishop_n be_v throughout_o the_o world_n not_o only_o in_o ignatius_n his_o time_n but_o in_o paul_n time_n who_o fix_v more_o than_o one_o of_o they_o in_o every_o church_n act_v 20.28_o phil._n 1.1_o that_o the_o bishop_n diocese_n in_o ignatius_n time_n and_o long_o after_o exceed_v not_o the_o bound_n of_o a_o modern_a parish_n appear_v 1._o the_o whole_a diocese_n meet_v together_o with_o the_o bishop_n for_o public_a worship_n let_v all_o follow_v the_o bishop_n as_o jesus_n christ_n and_o the_o presbytery_n as_o the_o apostle_n let_v no_o church_n affair_n be_v manage_v without_o the_o bishop_n where_o the_o bishop_n appear_v let_v the_o multitude_n be_v vos_fw-fr be_v ign._n ad_fw-la smyr_n p._n 6._o edit_fw-la vos_fw-fr if_o the_o prayer_n of_o one_o or_o two_o be_v so_o powerful_a how_o much_o more_o be_v the_o prayer_n of_o the_o bishop_n and_o the_o whole_a church_n he_o that_o come_v not_o into_o one_o place_n he_o be_v proud_a and_o self-condemned_n 34._o self-condemned_n ad_fw-la eph._n p._n 20._o 33_o 34._o do_v nothing_o without_o the_o bishop_n and_o presbyter_n run_v all_o of_o you_o together_o into_o one_o temple_n of_o god_n as_o to_o one_o altar_n 34._o altar_n ad_fw-la mag._n p._n 33_o 34._o where_o the_o shepherd_n be_v there_o do_v you_o follow_v as_o the_o sheep_n ought_v to_o do_v 40._o do_v ad_fw-la phil._n p._n 40._o 2._o baptism_n be_v general_o administer_v by_o the_o bishop_n within_o his_o diocese_n it_o be_v not_o lawful_a without_o the_o bishop_n either_o to_o baptise_v or_o to_o celebrate_v the_o lord_n supper_n 6._o supper_n ad_fw-la smy_n p._n 6._o so_o tertullian_n under_o the_o hand_n of_o our_o bishop_n we_o protest_v that_o we_o renounce_v the_o devil_n and_o the_o pomp_n of_o this_o world_n 336._o world_n de_fw-fr cor._n mil._n p._n 336._o 3._o the_o bishop_n have_v but_o one_o altar_n or_o communion_n in_o his_o whole_a diocese_n at_o which_o he_o have_v administer_v the_o lord_n supper_n to_o his_o whole_a flock_n give_v diligence_n to_o use_v one_o eucharist_n for_o there_o be_v one_o flesh_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n and_o one_o cup_n which_o represent_v the_o union_n of_o his_o blood_n one_o altar_n and_o one_o bishop_n with_o the_o presbytery_n and_o deacon_n my_o fellow-servant_n 41._o fellow-servant_n ad_fw-la phil._n p._n 41._o one_o altar_n here_o must_v be_v take_v individual_o as_o one_o bishop_n be_v it_o be_v absurd_a to_o say_v one_o specifical_a altar_n and_o one_o individual_a bishop_n tertullian_n say_v of_o the_o lord_n supper_n we_o receive_v it_o from_o no_o hand_n but_o from_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o precedent_n or_o bishop_n 338._o bishop_n de_fw-fr cor._n milit._n p._n 338._o they_o communicate_v at_o least_o once_o a_o week_n in_o some_o place_n twice_o or_o thrice_o one_o of_o our_o bishop_n will_v scarce_o be_v able_a to_o administer_v the_o lord_n supper_n in_o a_o whole_a month_n to_o all_o his_o diocese_n 4._o no_o marriage_n be_v make_v without_o the_o bishop_n those_o union_n be_v make_v with_o the_o sentence_n of_o the_o bishop_n 13._o bishop_n ad_fw-la poly._n p._n 13._o 5._o the_o bishop_n take_v care_n of_o all_o the_o poor_a of_o the_o dicess_n neglect_v not_o the_o widow_n do_v you_o take_v care_n of_o they_o next_o unto_o the_o lord_n let_v nothing_o be_v do_v without_o thy_o advice_n let_v the_o people_n often_o assemble_v together_o inquire_v after_o all_o by_o name_n despise_v not_o men-servant_n and_o maid-servant_n 13._o maid-servant_n ad_fw-la poly._n p._n 12._o 13._o here_o the_o bishop_n be_v to_o take_v care_n of_o the_o poor_a widow_n of_o his_o diocese_n to_o see_v that_o nothing_o be_v do_v without_o his_o advice_n and_o that_o the_o congregation_n often_o meet_v together_o he_o be_v to_o take_v a_o account_n by_o name_n of_o those_o that_o be_v absent_a not_o omit_v servant-man_n and_o maid_n what_o diocesan_n bishop_n can_v perform_v all_o this_o in_o his_o diocese_n which_o consist_v of_o some_o score_n or_o hundred_o of_o parish_n many_o more_o testimony_n may_v be_v gather_v out_o of_o these_o epistle_n to_o prove_v that_o ignatius_n his_o bishop_n be_v but_o a_o parish-bishop_n thus_o we_o have_v make_v it_o evident_a that_o the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n of_o ephesus_n be_v ledge_v in_o the_o presbyter_n of_o that_o church_n and_o that_o there_o be_v no_o change_n of_o the_o government_n afterward_o by_o the_o apostle_n and_o that_o there_o be_v no_o diocesan_n bishop_n there_o in_o ignatius_n his_o time_n the_o present_a bishop_n of_o salisbury_n do_v ingenuous_o acknowledge_v that_o ignatius_n be_v but_o the_o pastor_n of_o a_o particular_a church_n see_v the_o quotation_n in_o j._n oh_o plea_n p._n 30_o have_v invalidate_v the_o rector_n argument_n for_o diocesan_n episcopacy_n from_o 1_o tim._n and_o ignatius_n his_o epistle_n i_o proceed_v to_o consider_v what_o he_o have_v to_o offer_v in_o favour_n of_o titus_n his_o being_z bishop_n of_o crete_n if_o timothy_n be_v not_o bishop_n of_o ephesus_n no_o more_o be_v titus_n of_o crete_n for_o the_o epistle_n direct_v to_o both_o be_v much_o of_o the_o same_o strain_n their_o power_n be_v the_o same_o and_o both_o be_v officer_n of_o the_o same_o species_n namely_o evangelist_n timothy_n be_v express_o so_o call_v and_o titus_n be_v real_o one_o as_o will_v be_v acknowledge_v by_o the_o learned_a for_o he_o be_v the_o apostle_n assistant_n and_o messenger_n to_o the_o church_n particular_o to_o that_o of_o corinth_n where_o he_o seem_v to_o have_v spend_v a_o great_a part_n of_o his_o time_n 2_o c●r_n 2.13_o &_o 7.6_o &_o 8.6_o the_o apostle_n call_v he_o his_o companion_n and_o fellow-worker_n 2_o cor._n 8.23_o we_o find_v he_o with_o the_o apostle_n at_o jerusalem_n gal._n 2.13_o paul_n leave_v titus_n in_o crete_n 63._o p._n 63._o to_o set_v in_o order_n the_o thing_n that_o be_v want_v and_o to_o ordain_v elder_n in_o every_o city_n as_o the_o rector_n observe_v tit._n 1.5_o 1._o it_o be_v no_o where_n say_v that_o paul_n make_v he_o bishop_n of_o crete_n the_o trust_n commit_v to_o he_o be_v such_o as_o a_o evangelist_n may_v discharge_v this_o i_o presume_v will_v not_o be_v deny_v eusebius_n express_o affirm_v it_o be_v part_n of_o their_o work_n to_o ordain_v pastor_n 31._o pastor_n eccl._n hist_o iii_o 31._o and_o the_o rector_n acknowledge_v that_o branch_n of_o their_o power_n p_o 115._o 2._o he_o be_v leave_v in_o crete_n but_o for_o a_o season_n as_o timothy_n be_v in_o ephesus_n for_o the_o apostle_n charge_v he_o to_o come_v to_o he_o to_o nicopolis_n 3.12_o tit._n 3.12_o when_o he_o shall_v send_v artemas_n or_o tychicus_n to_o he_o for_o there_o he_o intend_v to_o winter_n by_o which_o it_o be_v evident_a his_o stay_n in_o crete_n by_o paul_n appointment_n be_v not_o long_o perhaps_o not_o above_o half_a a_o year_n if_o so_o much_o after_o which_o we_o never_o read_v of_o his_o return_v thither_o but_o we_o find_v he_o after_o this_o send_v into_o
dalmatia_n 2_o tim._n 4.10_o and_o we_o hear_v no_o more_o of_o he_o 3._o he_o think_v titus_n 1.5_o that_o thou_o may_v ordain_v elder_n not_o right_o translate_v it_o shall_v be_v that_o thou_o may_v appoint_v and_o settle_v elder_n in_o every_o city_n this_o presuppose_n that_o titus_n have_v the_o power_n of_o ordain_v also_o 1._o here_o he_o give_v up_o one_o of_o titus_n main_a power_n for_o which_o they_o feign_v he_o a_o bishop_n to_o wit_n his_o ordain_v of_o elder_n this_o he_o say_v be_v not_o the_o meaning_n of_o titus_n 1.5_o if_o this_o text_n do_v not_o prove_v his_o ordain_v power_n no_o one_o in_o that_o epistle_n do_v 2._o he_o fancy_v that_o assign_v unto_o presbyter_n their_o power_n and_o special_a place_n be_v the_o work_n of_o titus_n in_o crete_n and_o that_o this_o be_v after_o ordination_n do_v not_o titus_n ordain_v elder_n in_o every_o city_n or_o particular_a church_n as_o he_o himself_o explain_v it_o act_n 14.23_o and_o be_v they_o not_o choose_v by_o the_o multitude_n before_o ordination_n as_o he_o also_o confess_v in_o the_o case_n of_o his_o deacon-presbyter_n act_n 6._o he_o will_v do_v well_o to_o tell_v we_o what_o new_a power_n be_v assign_v unto_o the_o presbyter_n by_o titus_n after_o ordination_n perhaps_o he_o dream_v that_o the_o elder_n need_v a_o licence_n from_o their_o bishop_n to_o empower_v they_o to_o preach_v after_o ordination_n as_o the_o canon_n require_v 36._o require_v can._n 36._o paul_n say_v he_o entrust_v he_o with_o the_o charge_n of_o see_v unto_o the_o qualification_n of_o elder_n 65._o p._n 65._o v._o 6_o 7_o 8_o 9_o the_o same_o though_o more_o compendious_a than_o those_o in_o 1_o tim._n 3._o 1._o all_o that_o he_o may_v do_v as_o a_o evangelist_n or_o the_o apostle_n delegate_n as_o the_o bishop_n chaplain_n or_o archdeacon_n examine_v the_o candidate_n for_o the_o ministry_n with_o we_o 2._o he_o wise_o overlook_v the_o identity_n of_o bishop_n and_o presbyter_n which_o be_v assert_v in_o both_o the_o place_n he_o quote_v titus_n 1.5_o 6_o 7_o 8._o ordain_v elder_n if_o any_o be_v blameless_a for_o a_o bishop_n must_v be_v blameless_a the_o reason_n be_v incogent_n if_o elder_a and_o bishop_n be_v not_o the_o same_o the_o qualification_n of_o elder_n here_o be_v the_o same_o with_o those_o of_o a_o bishop_n in_o 1_o tim._n 3._o as_o he_o confess_v bishop_n and_o presbyter_n be_v the_o same_o not_o only_o at_o first_o but_o even_o at_o this_o time_n when_o these_o epistle_n be_v write_v to_o timothy_n and_o titus_n which_o make_v it_o evident_a they_o be_v evangelist_n superior_a to_o presbyter_n eph._n 4.11_o and_o not_o bishop_n in_o a_o proper_a sense_n who_o be_v one_o and_o the_o same_o with_o presbyter_n he_o will_v not_o be_v able_a to_o give_v one_o instance_n in_o all_o the_o new_a testament_n of_o any_o one_o ordinary_a minister_n or_o elder_n that_o be_v make_v superior_a to_o his_o brethren_n of_o the_o same_o order_n with_o he_o nor_o of_o any_o extraordinary_a officer_n that_o be_v make_v superior_a to_o other_o of_o the_o same_o kind_n one_o apostle_n be_v not_o make_v superior_a to_o another_o apostle_n nor_o one_o prophet_n to_o another_o prophet_n nor_o one_o evangelist_n to_o another_o evangelist_n though_o the_o apostle_n be_v above_o the_o prophet_n and_o the_o prophet_n above_o the_o evangelist_n and_o all_o the_o three_o be_v superior_a to_o the_o presbyter_n but_o no_o one_o presbyter_n be_v make_v superior_a in_o degree_n much_o less_o a_o ruler_n over_o another_o presbyter_n the_o apostle_n empower_n he_o say_v he_o cap._n 1.11_o to_o stop_v the_o mouth_n or_o silence_n false_a teacher_n to_o rebuke_v they_o sharp_o v._o 13._o that_o be_v v._o 10._o the_o unruly_a or_o nonconformist_n etc._n etc._n 1._o the_o apostle_n explain_v his_o mean_v about_o stop_v the_o mouth_n of_o false_a teacher_n in_o v._o 9_o that_o he_o may_v be_v able_a by_o sound_a doctrine_n both_o to_o exhort_v and_o convince_v gainsayer_n he_o speak_v of_o the_o presbyter_n ordain_v by_o titus_n that_o they_o must_v be_v able_a to_o convince_v gainsayer_n and_o so_o to_o stop_v their_o mouth_n even_o private_a person_n be_v exhort_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d to_o stop_v the_o mouth_n or_o put_v to_o silence_v the_o ignorance_n of_o foolish_a man_n 1_o pet._n 2.15_o 2._o but_o suppose_v it_o be_v mean_v of_o a_o authoritative_a silence_v of_o such_o it_o be_v no_o more_o than_o what_o titus_n may_v do_v as_o a_o evangelist_n and_o the_o apostle_n delegate_n 3._o the_o rector_n show_v his_o good_a will_n to_o have_v the_o nonconformist_n silence_v but_o it_o be_v well_o that_o curse_a cow_n have_v short_a horn_n 4._o the_o nonconformist_n or_o varuly_a person_n the_o apostle_n speak_v of_o be_v a_o sort_n of_o judaize_v christian_n that_o retain_v the_o legal_a ceremony_n and_o the_o commandment_n of_o man_n it_o be_v 1.10_o 13._o they_o be_v not_o content_a with_o the_o simplicity_n and_o plainness_n of_o gospel-institution_n but_o will_v superadd_a their_o own_o invention_n and_o impose_v they_o upon_o other_o these_o be_v the_o nonconformist_n that_o will_v not_o conform_v to_o the_o simplicity_n of_o the_o gospel_n nor_o leave_v other_o in_o the_o quiet_a possession_n of_o gospel-priviledge_n unless_o they_o submit_v to_o their_o imposition_n act_n 15.2_o gal._n 4.9_o 10._o and_o 5.1_o 2_o col_n 2.20_o 23._o grotius_n give_v another_o character_n by_o which_o these_o nonconformist_n may_v be_v know_v he_o say_v that_o the_o apostle_n point_v at_o those_o who_o teach_v that_o all_o israelite_n have_v a_o part_n in_o the_o world_n to_o come_v 1.10_o come_v grot._n in_o tit._n 1.10_o not_o unlike_o some_o people_n who_o affirm_v all_o to_o be_v save_v dead_a save_v vid._n com._n prayer_n burial_n dead_a that_o have_v the_o happiness_n to_o die_v in_o their_o communion_n and_o do_v not_o lay_v violent_a hand_n upon_o themselves_o we_o be_v oblige_v to_o the_o rector_n for_o help_v we_o to_o a_o right_a notion_n of_o nonconformity_n there_o be_v two_o sort_n of_o nonconformist_n some_o be_v so_o call_v because_o they_o do_v not_o conform_v to_o unscriptural_a imposition_n these_o the_o text_n speak_v nothing_o of_o other_o as_o the_o rector_n well_o observe_v may_v be_v so_o call_v because_o they_o do_v not_o conform_v to_o the_o simplicity_n of_o the_o gospel_n but_o impose_v humane_a invention_n as_o term_n of_o communion_n the_o latter_a of_o these_o two_o be_v the_o culpable_a nonconformist_n i_o believe_v mr._n g._n will_v not_o be_v for_o silence_v these_o lest_o be_v be_v condemn_v out_o of_o his_o own_o mouth_n paul_n instruct_v he_o to_o reject_v a_o heretic_n 66._o p._n 66._o tit._n 3.10_o that_o he_o may_v do_v as_o a_o evangelist_n what_o he_o transcribe_v out_o of_o ignatius_n from_o p._n 67._o to_o p._n 73._o do_v not_o concern_v crete_n and_o we_o have_v already_o consider_v ignatius_n bis_fw-la bishop_n here_o be_v not_o one_o direction_n or_o command_n give_v to_o the_o presbytery_n 76._o p._n 76._o nor_o any_o share_n in_o the_o government_n communicate_v to_o they_o in_o these_o epistle_n say_v our_o author_n 1._o the_o epistle_n be_v direct_v to_o evangelist_n who_o be_v superior_a to_o presbyter_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v fit_v the_o exhortation_n shall_v be_v immediate_o direct_v to_o they_o 2._o the_o direction_n concern_v the_o presbyter_n also_o as_o the_o ordinary_a perpetual_a governor_n of_o the_o church_n and_o doubtless_o be_v intend_v for_o the_o use_n of_o the_o church_n unto_o the_o end_n of_o time_n 1_o tim._n 4._o 2_o tim._n 3._o the_o presbyter_n be_v concern_v i_o hope_v in_o the_o several_a direction_n to_o purity_n patience_n constancy_n faithfulness_n in_o dispense_n the_o word_n etc._n etc._n 1_o tim_n 6.11_o 12._o 2_o tim._n 2.3_o 4._o and_o 4.1_o 2_o 3._o 3._o it_o be_v a_o very_a gross_a mistake_n that_o the_o presbytery_n have_v no_o share_n in_o the_o government_n communicate_v to_o they_o in_o these_o epistle_n paul_n ordain_v bishop_n there_o who_o among_o other_o qualification_n must_v be_v such_o as_o rule_v well_o their_o own_o house_n that_o they_o may_v take_v care_n of_o the_o church_n of_o god_n 1_o tim._n 3.4_o 5._o and_o in_o 1_o tim._n 5.17_o he_o mention_n elder_n that_o rule_v well_o and_o mere_a worthy_a of_o double_a honour_n he_o contradict_v himself_o and_o say_v that_o the_o presbyter_n have_v some_o interest_n in_o the_o government_n though_o their_o power_n be_v subordinate_a as_o appear_v from_o the_o council_n at_o jerusalem_n 77._o p._n 77._o act_v 15._o even_o with_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o doubtless_o then_o and_o much_o more_o with_o timothy_n and_o titus_n they_o have_v no_o share_n in_o the_o government_n and_o yet_o they_o have_v some_o interest_n in_o it_o himself_o can_v best_o reconcile_v these_o inconsistent_a proposition_n they_o be_v
agree_v by_o the_o learned_a that_o those_o who_o be_v call_v the_o apostle_n fellow-worker_n and_o be_v send_v by_o they_o as_o their_o messenger_n to_o the_o church_n to_o supply_v their_o absence_n be_v evangelist_n this_o be_v acknowledge_v by_o mr._n g._n p._n 118._o where_o he_o speak_v of_o itinerant_a evangelist_n we_o agree_v with_o he_o 113._o p._n 113._o that_o evangelist_n be_v in_o dignity_n and_o power_n next_o to_o prophet_n and_o above_o all_o other_o church_n officer_n he_o proceed_v to_o give_v we_o a_o description_n of_o a_o evangelist_n ibid._n ibid._n it_o appear_v say_v he_o from_o 2_o tim._n 4.5_o that_o a_o evangelist_n be_v one_o entrust_v by_o the_o apostle_n with_o the_o government_n of_o some_o church_n that_o timothy_n be_v a_o evangelist_n and_o that_o titus_n therefore_o be_v another_o evangelist_n for_o it_o have_v be_v demonstrate_v already_o cap._n 2._o that_o all_o the_o supreme_a power_n of_o ecclesiastical_a government_n be_v commit_v to_o they_o in_o their_o respective_a church_n the_o meaning_n of_o this_o paragraph_n be_v that_o evangelist_n be_v diocesan_n bishop_n for_o he_o make_v timothy_n the_o evangelist_n that_o be_v the_o bishop_n of_o ephesus_n and_z titus_n the_o evangelist_n or_o bishop_n of_o crete_n it_o be_v well_o he_o own_v timothy_n and_o titus_n to_o be_v evangelist_n it_o be_v as_o much_o as_o we_o desire_v ay_o but_o evangelist_n and_o bishop_n be_v the_o same_o to_o which_o i_o answer_v 1._o few_o or_o none_o of_o his_o judicious_a brethren_n will_v subscribe_v to_o this_o new_a notion_n of_o evangelist_n by_o which_o he_o evident_o give_v up_o the_o whole_a cause_n when_o he_o happen_v now_o and_o then_o to_o answer_v the_o title_n of_o his_o book_n which_o be_v tentamen_fw-la novum_n by_o advance_v some_o new_a notion_n he_o weak_o betray_v the_o cause_n he_o pretend_v strong_o to_o defend_v 2._o he_o own_v evangelist_n to_o be_v a_o species_n of_o church_n officer_n distinct_a from_o pastor_n and_o teacher_n according_a to_o eph._n 4.11_o and_o consequent_o he_o deny_v the_o diocesan_n bishop_n to_o be_v the_o pastor_n of_o their_o respective_a church_n i_o doubt_v he_o have_v forget_v the_o prayer_n of_o the_o church_n in_o which_o the_o bishop_n be_v call_v the_o pastor_n of_o the_o flock_n week_n flock_n the_o prayer_n in_o the_o ember_n week_n if_o he_o say_v they_o be_v both_o pastor_n and_o evangelist_n he_o confound_v those_o officer_n who_o the_o apostle_n distinguish_v the_o presbyter_n be_v the_o pastor_n of_o the_o flock_n that_o be_v the_o ordinary_a and_o settle_a ruler_n of_o it_o act_n 17.28_o 1_o pet._n 5.2_o rev._n 2.27_o let_v they_o have_v this_o power_n which_o the_o holy_a ghost_n have_v give_v they_o as_o the_o proper_a bishop_n of_o the_o flock_n and_o when_o he_o have_v prove_v evangelist_n to_o be_v diocesan_n bishop_n we_o will_v ready_o receive_v they_o 3._o dr._n hammond_n say_v that_o the_o pastor_n not_o the_o evangelist_n in_o eph._n 4.11_o be_v the_o bishop_n that_o govern_v particular_a charge_n 4._o i_o have_v full_o answer_v his_o argument_n by_o which_o he_o pretend_v to_o demonstrate_v that_o timothy_n and_o titus_n be_v bishop_n of_o ephesus_n and_o crete_n he_o advance_v a_o new_a order_n of_o evangelist_n 115._o p._n 114._o 115._o who_o be_v the_o fix_a governor_n of_o some_o city_n and_o the_o country_n adjacent_a and_o can_v altogether_o allow_v their_o notion_n who_o say_v a_o evangelist_n be_v a_o unsettle_a church-officer_n that_o go_v from_o place_n to_o place_n to_o finish_v the_o church_n begin_v by_o the_o apostle_n and_o particular_o to_o ordain_v elder_n among_o they_o and_o yet_o he_o grant_v that_o a_o evangelist_n as_o ravanellus_n express_v it_o ordain_v elder_n oppidatim_o in_o every_o town_n or_o village_n 1._o he_o own_v that_o evangelist_n may_v ordain_v in_o every_o town_n and_o why_o not_o in_o every_o city_n ravanellus_n explain_v his_o oppidatim_fw-la by_o tit._n 1.5_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d in_o every_o city_n but_o he_o wilful_o overlook_v that_o for_o he_o know_v that_o there_o be_v many_o city_n in_o crete_n and_o according_a to_o the_o rule_n that_o every_o city_n must_v have_v a_o bishop_n titus_n must_v be_v archbishop_n of_o crete_n and_o the_o sole_a power_n of_o ordination_n be_v in_o titus_n it_o will_v natural_o follow_v that_o none_o but_o archbishop_n can_v ordain_v andrew_n cretentis_fw-la call_v he_o archbishop_n and_o say_v he_o have_v twelve_o bishop_n under_o he_o 2._o he_o can_v altogether_o allow_v evangelist_n to_o be_v unsettle_a officer_n it_o seem_v he_o do_v in_o part_n allow_v it_o 115._o p._n 115._o it_o be_v too_o bright_a a_o truth_n to_o be_v deny_v but_o he_o endeavour_v to_o obscure_v it_o what_o he_o can_v and_o will_v fain_o persuade_v his_o reader_n that_o evangelist_n be_v fix_v officer_n but_o let_v we_o hear_v his_o proof_n philip_n be_v a_o fix_a evangelist_n because_o luke_n leave_v he_o at_o caesarea_n act_v 8.40_o and_o we_o find_v he_o there_o almost_o twenty_o year_n after_o have_v a_o house_n and_o a_o settle_a family_n act_v 21.8_o 1._o when_o he_o have_v prove_v that_o philip_n reside_v at_o caesarea_n as_o the_o settle_a bishop_n of_o that_o church_n and_o that_o he_o be_v not_o where_o else_o all_o those_o year_n he_o may_v talk_v of_o a_o fix_a evangelist_n 2._o may_v not_o a_o unsettled_a officer_n have_v a_o settle_a family_n which_o he_o may_v visit_v at_o time_n paul_n continue_v two_o year_n at_o ephesus_n act_v 19.10_o a_o year_n and_o a_o half_a at_o corinth_n act_v 18.11_o two_o year_n in_o his_o own_o hire_a house_n at_o rome_n act_v 28.30_o be_v he_o therefore_o a_o settle_a or_o fix_a apostle_n 3._o as_o much_o as_o we_o have_v of_o the_o history_n of_o philip_n bespeak_v he_o a_o unsettled_a officer_n we_o find_v he_o in_o samaria_n act_v 8.12_o with_o the_o ethiopian_a eunuch_n in_o the_o way_n from_o jerusalem_n unto_o gaza_n act_v 8.26_o at_o asotus_n and_o preach_v in_o all_o the_o city_n till_o he_o come_v to_o caesarea_n act_v 8.40_o which_o perhaps_o may_v be_v his_o birth-place_n or_o he_o may_v marry_v there_o which_o be_v more_o likely_a because_o we_o read_v of_o four_o daughter_n he_o have_v which_o do_v prophecy_n act_v 21.9_o he_o be_v a_o evangelist_n before_o he_o come_v to_o caesarea_n 68_o caesarea_n j._n pear_n lect._n in_o act_n v._o §._o 1._o &_o 5._o p._n 66._o 68_o for_o he_o preach_v up_o and_o down_o by_o virtue_n of_o a_o extraordinary_a call_n act_v 8.6_o 7_o 26_o 39_o and_o it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v imagine_v he_o lay_v aside_o the_o office_n of_o a_o evangelist_n after_o his_o marriage_n and_o therefore_o luke_n testify_v concern_v he_o that_o although_o he_o be_v marry_v and_o have_v a_o settle_a family_n he_o be_v a_o evangelist_n a_o unsettled_a extraordinary_a officer_n still_o act_v 21.8_o 9_o 10._o he_o can_v not_o produce_v any_o ancient_a author_n that_o make_v he_o bishop_n of_o caesarea_n eusebius_n say_v he_o dye_v at_o hierapolis_n 1569._o hierapolis_n euseb_n hist_o iii_o 25._o edit_fw-la lovan_n 1569._o his_o other_o proof_n from_o timothy_n and_o titus_n be_v fix_v or_o settle_a evangelist_n we_o consider_v before_o and_o it_o be_v petitio_fw-la principii_fw-la i_o will_v add_v this_o 1._o all_o that_o he_o say_v to_o prove_v they_o fix_v officer_n of_o ephesus_n and_o crete_n depend_v upon_o his_o supposition_n that_o the_o epistle_n to_o they_o be_v write_v after_o paul_n first_o bond_n at_o rome_n which_o i_o have_v disprove_v with_o respect_n to_o the_o first_o epistle_n to_o timothy_n and_o it_o be_v confess_v by_o all_o that_o this_o epistle_n to_o timothy_n and_o the_o epistle_n to_o titus_n be_v write_v about_o the_o same_o time_n the_o epistle_n to_o titus_n be_v write_v when_o paul_n be_v in_o macedonia_n design_v to_o winter_n in_o nicopolis_n tit._n 3.12_o he_o promise_v to_o send_v tychicus_n or_o artemas_n unto_o titus_n the_o former_a of_o these_o two_o be_v with_o paul_n in_o macedonia_n and_o afterward_o accompany_v he_o into_o asia_n act_v 20.4_o therefore_o this_o epistle_n be_v write_v before_o paul_n first_o imprisonment_n at_o rome_n 2._o timothy_n and_o titus_n be_v no_o resident_a evangelist_n of_o ephesus_n and_o crete_n for_o the_o apostle_n call_v they_o both_o away_o he_o call_v titus_n to_o nicopolis_n from_o crete_n tit._n 3.12_o which_o be_v a_o evidence_n he_o be_v to_o make_v but_o a_o short_a stay_n there_o to_o set_v in_o order_n the_o thing_n that_o be_v want_v tit._n 1.5_o which_o when_o he_o have_v do_v he_o must_v attend_v the_o apostle_n as_o he_o have_v do_v before_o according_o he_o go_v to_o paul_n to_o nicopolis_n and_o be_v his_o companion_n and_o messenger_n to_o several_a church_n and_o at_o last_o be_v send_v by_o he_o to_o dalmatia_n 2_o tim._n 4.10_o and_o we_o hear_v no_o
more_o of_o he_o it_o can_v be_v make_v to_o appear_v that_o ever_o he_o return_v more_o to_o crete_n the_o apostle_n call_v timothy_n away_o from_o ephesus_n to_o rome_n 2_o tim._n 4.9_o for_o the_o same_o reason_n that_o he_o send_v for_o mark_n both_o be_v profitable_a to_o he_o for_o the_o ministry_n have_v none_o with_o he_o but_o luke_n v._o 10_o 11._o according_o timothy_n come_v to_o he_o and_o he_o promise_v to_o send_v he_o to_o macedonia_n and_o not_o to_o ephesus_n phil._n 2.19_o but_o it_o shall_v seem_v he_o can_v not_o go_v as_o soon_o as_o he_o intend_v be_v make_v a_o prisoner_n at_o rome_n when_o he_o be_v set_v at_o liberty_n he_o accompany_v the_o apostle_n to_o judea_n or_o design_v so_o to_o do_v heb._n 13.23_o from_o all_o which_o it_o appear_v that_o they_o be_v evangelist_n in_o a_o proper_a sense_n that_o be_v extraordinary_a and_o unsettled_a church-officer_n who_o assist_v the_o apostle_n in_o their_o ministry_n and_o be_v their_o messenger_n to_o the_o church_n to_o establish_v settle_v and_o build_v they_o up_o as_o they_o have_v direction_n from_o the_o apostle_n have_v power_n to_o ordain_v elder_n and_o to_o put_v forth_o other_o act_n of_o government_n as_o occasion_n be_v offer_v all_o this_o be_v evident_a from_o the_o power_n commit_v to_o timothy_n and_o titus_n which_o doubtless_o be_v the_o same_o in_o other_o church_n as_o in_o ephesus_n and_o crete_n for_o they_o be_v evangelist_n as_o much_o in_o one_o place_v as_o in_o another_o and_o the_o power_n of_o evangelist_n be_v the_o same_o in_o all_o place_n 3._o this_o agree_v with_o the_o account_n that_o hilarius_n give_v of_o evangelist_n who_o be_v succeed_v by_o the_o deacon_n as_o he_o think_v as_o the_o prophet_n be_v by_o the_o presbyter_n and_o the_o apostle_n by_o the_o bishop_n evangelist_n say_v he_o do_v evangelize_n or_o preach_v the_o gospel_n sine_fw-la cathedrá_fw-fr without_o a_o fix_a residence_n j._n o._n quote_v eusebius_n in_o his_o plea_n p._n 18._o to_o the_o same_o purpose_n he_o say_v of_o the_o evangelist_n eph._n hil._n in_o 4._o eph._n that_o they_o preach_v christ_n to_o infidel_n ordain_v pastor_n and_o pass_v into_o other_o country_n and_o nation_n to_o this_o mr._n g._n answer_n it_o be_v not_o the_o proper_a work_n of_o evangelist_n to_o go_v up_o and_o down_o preach_v the_o gospel_n eusebius_n say_v they_o go_v far_o from_o their_o house_n do_v the_o work_n of_o evangelist_n and_o diligent_o preach_v christ_n to_o such_o as_o have_v not_o as_o yet_o hear_v the_o word_n of_o faith_n and_o deliver_v to_o they_o the_o scripture_n of_o the_o holy_a gospel_n ordain_v other_o pastor_n and_o go_v into_o other_o country_n and_o nation_n i_o have_v prove_v out_o of_o paul_n epistle_n they_o be_v unsettled_a officer_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v their_o proper_a work_n to_o go_v up_o and_o down_o preach_v the_o gospel_n and_o eusebius_n affirm_v they_o do_v so_o but_o say_v he_o eusebius_n write_v l._n 2._o cap._n 24._o that_o mark_v the_o evangelist_n be_v dead_a annianus_n so_o he_o write_v it_o for_o anianus_n enter_v upon_o the_o administration_n of_o the_o church_n of_o alexandria_n hence_o he_o infer_v that_o mark_n be_v a_o resident_a evangelist_n not_o rove_a up_o and_o down_o 1._o he_o may_v as_o well_o say_v that_o peter_n be_v a_o resident_a apostle_n because_o eusebius_n say_v that_o linus_n succeed_v he_o in_o the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n 2.4_o rome_n eccl._n hist_o iii_o 2.4_o 2._o mark_n be_v no_o resident_a evangelist_n he_o be_v a_o companion_n of_o peter_n and_o paul_n and_o travel_v with_o they_o up_o and_o down_o and_o be_v send_v by_o they_o to_o several_a church_n in_o act_n 12.25_o we_o find_v he_o with_o paul_n and_o barnabas_n at_o perga_n in_o pamphylia_n he_o leave_v they_o and_o go_v to_o jerusalem_n act_v 13.13_o he_o afterward_o for_o some_o time_n accompany_v barnabas_n to_o cyprus_n and_o other_o place_n act_n 15.39_o we_o find_v he_o after_o that_o with_o timothy_n or_o not_o far_o from_o he_o and_o send_v for_o by_o paul_n to_o assist_v he_o in_o the_o ministry_n 2_o tim._n 4.11_o when_o he_o be_v prisoner_n at_o rome_n we_o find_v he_o there_o with_o paul_n philem_n 24._o from_o whence_o he_o send_v he_o to_o coloss_n col._n 4.10_o when_o peter_n write_v his_o first_o epistle_n mark_n be_v with_o he_o at_o babylon_n 1_o pet._n 5.13_o and_o yet_o our_o rector_n have_v the_o confidence_n to_o call_v he_o a_o resident_a evangelist_n 3._o eusebius_n call_v he_o peter_n companion_n 14.15_o companion_n lib._n 2._o cap._n 14.15_o and_o add_v they_o say_v he_o first_o pass_v over_o into_o egypt_n and_o preach_v there_o the_o gospel_n which_o he_o have_v write_v and_o plant_v the_o first_o church_n in_o alexandria_n perhaps_o he_o may_v end_v his_o day_n here_o in_o settle_v this_o church_n as_o all_o the_o evangelist_n and_o apostle_n must_v end_v their_o day_n in_o some_o place_n or_o other_o and_o in_o the_o service_n of_o some_o church_n but_o this_o can_v not_o make_v either_o apostle_n or_o evangelist_n resident_a officer_n j._n o._n have_v say_v 119._o p._n 119._o that_o chrysostom_n agree_v with_o eusebius_n that_o evangelist_n be_v unfixed_a church-officer_n the_o rector_n here_o exclaim_v against_o j._n oh_o insincerity_n in_o put_v the_o affirmative_a for_o the_o negative_a that_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d for_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o leave_v out_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d he_o further_a note_n out_o of_o chrysostom_n that_o timothy_n and_o titus_n be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d employ_v in_o one_o place_n that_o be_v be_v resident_a evangelist_n and_o he_o tell_v we_o he_o have_v employ_v his_o friend_n to_o examine_v all_o the_o edition_n of_o chrysostom_n in_o both_o university_n and_o find_v that_o nothing_o can_v lead_v j._n o._n into_o this_o error_n but_o design_n and_o want_v of_o sincerity_n st._n chrysostom_n then_o must_v be_v acknowledge_v say_v he_o on_o my_o side_n and_o to_o have_v affirm_v the_o evangelist_n be_v fix_v and_o resident_a church-ruler_n and_o that_o timothy_n and_o titus_n be_v so_o 1._o here_o be_v a_o very_a severe_a charge_n for_o a_o syllabical_a mistake_n of_o the_o transcriber_n of_o j._n oh_o copy_n who_o put_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d for_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d which_o be_v overlook_v in_o the_o errata_fw-la i_o doubt_v not_o but_o this_o candid_a gentleman_n have_v examine_v j._n oh_o other_o quotation_n it_o be_v well_o he_o can_v find_v no_o more_o fault_n in_o a_o book_n that_o contain_v some_o hundred_o of_o quotation_n 2._o j._n o._n do_v not_o leave_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d out_o to_o serve_v his_o cause_n 163._o chrysost_n in_o epist._n edit_n donat._n veron_n p._n 163._o as_o mr._n g._n false_o affirm_v but_o he_o transcribe_v the_o passage_n as_o he_o sound_v it_o in_o the_o edition_n which_o he_o have_v by_o he_o which_o have_v not_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 3._o j._n oh_o notion_n of_o evangelist_n that_o they_o be_v unsettled_a church-officer_n need_v neither_o eusebius_n nor_o chrysostom_n testimony_n to_o confirm_v it_o for_o the_o history_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o evangelist_n in_o the_o act_n and_o epistle_n of_o paul_n make_v it_o evident_a that_o they_o be_v such_o and_o mr._n g._n himself_n can_v deny_v but_o there_o be_v itinerant_a evangelist_n as_o he_o call_v they_o p._n 118._o and_o he_o own_v it_o to_o be_v the_o general_a opinion_n which_o he_o will_v rectify_v by_o his_o notion_n of_o fix_a evangelist_n j._n o_o his_o notion_n of_o evangelist_n be_v ground_v on_o the_o scripture_n and_o agreeable_a to_o the_o receive_a opinion_n of_o the_o learned_a he_o can_v be_v under_o no_o temptation_n to_o alter_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d into_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d in_o chrysostom_n especial_o 4._o have_v chrysostom_n of_o his_o side_n without_o that_o alteration_n thus_o he_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d etc._n etc._n he_o give_v three_o evangelist_n who_o do_v not_o go_v about_o every_o where_o but_o preach_v the_o gospel_n as_o priscilla_n and_o aquilla_n pastor_n and_o teacher_n be_v those_o to_o who_o care_n the_o the_o people_n be_v whole_o commit_v what_o then_o be_v the_o pastor_n and_o teacher_n inferior_a yes_o they_o who_o be_v resident_a and_o employ_v only_o in_o one_o place_n as_o timothy_n and_o titus_n be_v altogether_o inferior_a to_o those_o that_o go_v about_o and_o evangelize_v he_o speak_v a_o little_a after_o of_o evangelist_n who_o write_v the_o gospel_n in_o this_o passage_n note_n chrysostom_n do_v not_o deny_v but_o evangelist_n do_v go_v about_o he_o only_o say_v they_o do_v not_o go_v about_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d every_o where_o as_o the_o apostle_n do_v they_o move_v
in_o a_o narrow_a orb_n than_o the_o apostle_n who_o messenger_n and_o minister_n they_o be_v and_o by_o who_o appointment_n their_o motion_n be_v guide_v and_o limit_v that_o this_o be_v chrysostoms_n meaning_n appear_v 1._o from_o the_o instance_n of_o aquila_n and_o priscilla_n which_o he_o give_v these_o be_v evangelist_n with_o chrysostom_n now_o these_o do_v remove_v from_o one_o place_n to_o another_o from_o rome_n to_o corinth_n this_o remove_n be_v occasion_v by_o a_o edict_n of_o claudius_n act_v 18.1_o 2._o some_o time_n after_o they_o remove_v with_o paul_n to_o ephesus_n ver_fw-la 18._o doubtless_o by_o paul_n appointment_n as_o other_o evangelist_n do_v thus_o we_o see_v chrysostom_n evangelist_n do_v go_v up_o and_o down_o but_o not_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d every_o where_n at_o their_o own_o pleasure_n as_o the_o apostle_n do_v who_o have_v no_o superior_n to_o direct_v their_o motion_n but_o the_o evangelist_n remove_v under_o the_o conduct_n of_o the_o apostle_n the_o apostle_n be_v immedinte_o under_o the_o conduct_n of_o the_o spirit_n and_o go_v about_o every_o where_o whither_o the_o spirit_n guide_v they_o the_o evangelist_n be_v under_o the_o conduct_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o go_v about_o also_o but_o only_o to_o such_o place_n and_o service_n as_o the_o apostle_n direct_v they_o priscilla_n a_o woman_n be_v a_o evangelist_n in_o chrysostom_n 18.22_o chrysostom_n see_v act_n 18.22_o i_o hope_v mr._n g._n will_v not_o make_v a_o settle_a church_n officer_n that_o be_v a_o bishop_n of_o she_o for_o a_o evangelist_n and_o a_o bishop_n be_v the_o same_o with_o he_o chrysostom_n here_o seem_v to_o confess_v that_o woman_n go_v about_o to_o communicate_v the_o doctrine_n of_o christianity_n to_o the_o woman_n to_o who_o the_o man_n have_v not_o access_n in_o the_o eastern_a country_n the_o same_o be_v affirm_v by_o clement_n of_o alexandria_n who_o think_v the_o sister_n mention_v in_o 1_o cor._n 9.5_o minister_v unto_o the_o woman_n who_o keep_v at_o home_n by_o who_o the_o doctrine_n of_o our_o lord_n may_v enter_v into_o the_o apartment_n of_o the_o woman_n without_o reprehension_n or_o evil_a suspicion_n 79._o suspicion_n clem._n alex_n strom._n iii_o vid._n constit_fw-la apost_n iii_o 15._o conc._n laod._n can._n xi_o epiph._n haer_fw-mi 79._o 2._o chrysostom_n do_v not_o reckon_v timothy_n and_o titus_n among_o evangelist_n but_o among_o the_o pastor_n or_o fix_a officer_n who_o he_o make_v inferior_a to_o those_o that_o go_v up_o and_o down_o and_o evangelize_v i._n e._n the_o evangelist_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d in_o eph._n 4._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d edit_fw-la donas_fw-la veron_n he_o call_v timothy_n and_o titus_n fix_v pastor_n according_a to_o the_o receive_a opinion_n of_o his_o age_n but_o he_o right_o distinguish_v between_o evangelist_n and_o pastor_n and_o make_v the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d or_o evangelist_n to_o be_v the_o same_o with_o the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d or_o these_o that_o go_v about_o preach_v the_o gospel_n thus_o after_o all_o the_o noise_n and_o clamour_n which_o mr._n g._n have_v make_v its_o evident_a that_o chrysostom_n agree_v with_o eusebius_n in_o his_o notion_n of_o evangelist_n their_o calling_n timothy_n and_o titus_n bishop_n do_v not_o affect_v we_o who_o make_v the_o holy_a scripture_n the_o rule_n of_o our_o faith_n and_o not_o the_o sentiment_n of_o any_o fallible_a men._n we_o have_v prove_v from_o scripture_n that_o they_o be_v evangelist_n and_o not_o diocesan_n bishop_n eusebius_n say_v only_o 4._o hist._n iii_o 4._o it_o be_v report_v that_o timothy_n be_v the_o first_o bishop_n of_o ephesus_n and_o he_o ingenious_o acknowledge_v that_o they_o have_v no_o certainty_n who_o succeed_v the_o apostle_n in_o the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n plant_v by_o they_o those_o only_o except_v who_o be_v mention_v in_o paul_n epistle_n it_o be_v fit_a therefore_o we_o shall_v be_v determine_v in_o this_o point_n by_o the_o write_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n it_o be_v well_o observe_v by_o the_o learned_a bishop_n of_o worcester_n that_o the_o first_o that_o call_v timothy_n bishop_n of_o ephesus_n be_v leontius_n bishop_n of_o magnesia_n in_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n this_o be_v four_o hundred_o year_n after_o in_o which_o time_n record_v be_v lose_v and_o bishop_n be_v after_o settle_v there_o no_o doubt_n they_o will_v begin_v the_o succession_n with_o timothy_n because_o of_o his_o employment_n there_o once_o for_o settle_v the_o church_n thereabouts_o he_o add_v that_o this_o be_v not_o the_o act_n of_o the_o council_n but_o of_o a_o single_a person_n deliver_v his_o private_a opinion_n in_o it_o and_o that_o by_o the_o by_o too_o and_o he_o be_v contradict_v in_o the_o face_n of_o the_o council_n for_o say_v that_o the_o bishop_n of_o ephesus_n have_v all_o of_o they_o be_v ordain_v upon_o the_o place_n see_v more_o in_o that_o learned_a author_n who_o judicious_o confute_v their_o opinion_n who_o make_v timothy_n bishop_n of_o ephesus_n dr._n stillingfleet_n iren._n p._n 302_o 303._o the_o father_n call_v the_o apostle_n bishop_n which_o all_o grant_v they_o be_v not_o in_o a_o proper_a sense_n epiphanius_n say_v that_o peter_n and_o paul_n be_v both_o of_o they_o apostle_n and_o bishop_n at_o rome_n epiph._n haeres_fw-la xxvii_o the_o father_n therefore_o when_o they_o call_v apostle_n or_o apostolical_a man_n bishop_n speak_v in_o the_o language_n of_o their_o time_n and_o be_v not_o to_o be_v take_v in_o a_o strict_a sense_n have_v go_v through_o his_o book_n and_o discover_v the_o fallacy_n ot_fw-mi his_o reason_n it_o be_v needless_a to_o take_v notice_n of_o his_o last_o chapter_n which_o he_o call_v a_o answer_n to_o j._n oh_o plea_n in_o which_o there_o be_v scarce_o any_o thing_n which_o have_v not_o be_v consider_v already_o yet_o for_o the_o sake_n of_o the_o more_o ignorant_a reader_n i_o will_v make_v some_o short_a reply_n to_o his_o answer_n chap._n vi_o of_o parish-discipline_n presbyter_n have_v tower_n of_o government_n 1._o j._n oh_o first_o argument_n for_o ordination_n by_o presbyter_n viz._n the_o identity_n of_o bishop_n and_o presbyter_n acknowledge_v 1_o tim._n 5.17_o consider_v 1_o tim._n 1.3_o do_v not_o prove_v timothy_n bishop_n of_o ephesus_n dr._n whittaker_n vindicated_n ignatius_n one_o altar_n explain_v the_o extent_n of_o the_o church_n of_o ephesus_n a_o objection_n answer_v rev._n 5.11_o vindicated_n br._n lightfoot'_v notion_n of_o angel_n vindicated_n 2._o j._n oh_o second_o and_o three_o argument_n for_o ordination_n by_o presbyter_n vindicated_n presbyter_n succeed_v the_o apostle_n ignatius_n and_o ireneus_fw-la vindicated_n more_o testimony_n to_o the_o same_o effect_n he_o charge_v j._n o._n with_o reflect_v on_o episcopal_a ordination_n 122._o p._n 122._o but_o give_v no_o instance_n of_o any_o such_o reflection_n which_o doubtless_o he_o will_v have_v do_v if_o he_o have_v be_v able_a let_v this_o pass_n among_o his_o other_o calumny_n his_o crambe_n about_o jerom_n and_o ignatius_n have_v be_v consider_v before_o 123._o p._n 123._o it_o be_v endless_a to_o tire_v my_o reader_n and_o myself_o with_o nauseous_a repetition_n as_o often_o as_o this_o author_n give_v occasion_n he_o fall_v foul_o upon_o j._n o._n for_o say_v that_o parish-priest_n have_v no_o power_n of_o discipline_n 126._o p._n 125_o 126._o which_o i_o have_v prove_v they_o have_v power_n of_o discipline_n say_v he_o because_o all_o the_o canon_n or_o law_n of_o the_o church_n be_v make_v by_o the_o priest_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n as_o well_o as_o by_o the_o bishop_n 1._o their_o executive_a power_n be_v the_o same_o with_o their_o legislative_a power_n that_o be_v none_o at_o all_o the_o act_n of_o convocation_n be_v no_o law_n till_o they_o be_v confirm_v in_o parliament_n 2._o have_v every_o parish-priest_n a_o power_n of_o make_v church-law_n if_o not_o this_o instance_n be_v impertinent_o bring_v in_o to_o prove_v that_o the_o parish-priest_n have_v power_n of_o discipline_n if_o it_o be_v say_v they_o make_v law_n by_o their_o representative_n so_o do_v the_o people_n of_o england_n by_o their_o representative_n in_o parliament_n do_v it_o follow_v therefore_o that_o every_o freeholder_n have_v the_o power_n of_o govern_v though_o the_o truth_n be_v the_o convocation_n be_v not_o a_o just_a representative_a of_o the_o clergy_n for_o in_o the_o convocation_n for_o the_o province_n of_o canterbury_n there_o be_v but_o 44_o clerk_n represent_v the_o clergy_n the_o bishop_n dean_n prebendary_n and_o arch-deacon_n make_v up_o 122._o the_o arch-deacon_n who_o be_v the_o bishop_n creature_n as_o be_v choose_v sole_o by_o they_o are_z 10_o in_o number_n more_o than_o the_o clerk_n so_o that_o the_o clerk_n be_v little_o more_o than_o cipher_n in_o convocation_n there_o be_v enough_o in_o the_o low_a house_n to_o out-vote_n they_o beside_o a_o
upper_a house_n of_o bishop_n who_o have_v sometime_o a_o considerable_a influence_n in_o the_o election_n of_o the_o very_a clerk_n 3._o the_o rector_n may_v please_v himself_o with_o his_o power_n of_o make_v new_a law_n all_o the_o power_n we_o plead_v for_o be_v a_o liberty_n for_o parish-minister_n to_o execute_v the_o law_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o exclusion_n of_o the_o scandalous_a and_o the_o admission_n of_o such_o as_o be_v due_o qualify_v for_o gospel-ordinance_n the_o parish-minister_n or_o priest_n as_o he_o call_v they_o and_o yet_o be_v unreasonable_o angry_a with_o we_o for_o call_v they_o so_o have_v power_n to_o heprove_v and_o suspend_v for_o a_o time_n we_o have_v this_o before_o in_o the_o preface_n a_o private_a person_n may_v reprove_v they_o can_v suspend_v from_o the_o lord_n supper_n for_o a_o time_n i._n e._n till_o the_o next_o return_n of_o the_o carrier_n or_o about_o 14_o day_n and_o then_o they_o be_v oblige_v to_o deliver_v up_o all_o to_o the_o ordinary_a with_o who_o the_o offender_n often_o commutes_fw-la for_o his_o crime_n and_o return_v as_o impenitent_a as_o he_o go_v except_o he_o repent_v that_o he_o have_v part_v with_o so_o much_o money_n when_o he_o have_v make_v his_o peace_n with_o the_o ordinary_a or_o his_o commissary_n or_o chancellor_n the_o minister_n must_v admit_v he_o or_o be_v proceed_v against_o himself_o for_o disobey_v his_o superior_n be_v their_o any_o presilent_a for_o this_o in_o the_o gospel_n do_v christ_n or_o his_o apostle_n establish_v this_o sort_n of_o discipline_n mr._n g._n challenge_n j._n o._n to_o prove_v out_o of_o scripture_n that_o ever_o any_o ordinary_a presbyter_n do_v excommunicate_a 126._o p._n 126._o we_o have_v but_o few_o instance_n of_o excommunication_n in_o scripture_n but_o we_o have_v prove_v already_o that_o the_o corinthian_a presbyter_n and_o consequent_o all_o other_o have_v power_n to_o judge_n i._n e._n to_o decree_v excommunicate_v as_o the_o rector_n explain_v it_o those_o that_o be_v within_o 1_o cor._n 5.12_o see_v rom._n 16.17_o 2_o cor._n 2.6_o 2_o thess_n 3.6_o can_v the_o rector_n who_o so_o liberal_o demand_v scripture-proof_n give_v we_o any_o instance_n of_o presbyter_n suspend_v for_o a_o fortnight_n if_o he_o can_v find_v no_o proof_n in_o scripture_n that_o ordinary_a presbyter_n do_v suspend_v at_o all_o from_o the_o communion_n how_o dare_v they_o do_v it_o for_o a_o fortnight_n if_o he_o find_v by_o scripture_n they_o may_v suspend_v how_o dare_v he_o condemn_v our_o presbyter_n for_o suspending_a person_n until_o they_o see_v some_o evidence_n of_o their_o repentance_n but_o since_o he_o call_v for_o proof_n let_v he_o show_v we_o some_o proof_n out_o of_o scripture_n for_o the_o power_n of_o lay-chancellor_n to_o excommunicate_v or_o some_o instance_n of_o commute_v penance_n for_o a_o sum_n of_o money_n i_o have_v read_v in_o scripture_n of_o the_o priest_n eat_v up_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o people_n and_o set_v their_o heart_n on_o their_o iniquity_n hosh_n 4_o 8._o the_o covetous_a priest_n than_o get_v a_o small_a share_n out_o of_o the_o sacrifice_n occasion_v by_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o people_n jev_n 6.26_o &_o 10.17_o but_o our_o commuter_n engross_v the_o whole_a offer_v to_o themselves_o it_o be_v odd_a to_o hear_v a_o man_n call_v for_o scripture-proof_n who_o can_v pretend_v to_o any_o scripture-proof_n for_o abundance_n of_o thing_n which_o they_o practise_v and_o impose_v as_o condition_n of_o communion_n on_o minister_n and_o people_n tliis_fw-la gentleman_n have_v a_o measure_n and_o a_o measure_n that_o be_v a_o double_a measure_n one_o for_o himself_o and_o brethren_n and_o another_o for_o the_o dissenter_n be_v he_o willing_a to_o be_v determine_v by_o the_o scripture_n as_o he_o pretend_v our_o controversy_n will_v be_v soon_o at_o a_o end_n he_o ignorant_o affirm_v ibid._n ibid._n that_o the_o presbyterian_a bishop_n as_o he_o call_v they_o be_v at_o best_a but_o the_o executioner_n of_o the_o lay-elders_a will._n i_o know_v but_o very_o few_o of_o the_o congregation_n call_v presbyterian_a that_o have_v any_o rule_v elder_n at_o all_o and_o those_o that_o have_v receive_v they_o only_o as_o assistant_n to_o the_o minister_n and_o not_o as_o ruler_n superior_a to_o they_o j._n oh_o first_o argument_n to_o prove_v that_o presbyter_n may_v ordain_v be_v because_o they_o be_v scripture-bishop_n plea_n p._n 12_o 13._o he_o prove_v the_o identity_n of_o bishop_n and_o presbyter_n in_o the_o new_a testament_n time_n and_o some_o age_n after_o to_o this_o argument_n the_o rector_n answer_v 1._o he_o grant_v they_o be_v the_o same_o in_o the_o new_a testament_n 127._o p._n 126_o 127._o and_o be_v the_o ordinary_a ruler_n of_o the_o church_n but_o timothy_n and_o titus_n be_v above_o they_o nothing_o but_o the_o brightness_n of_o truth_n can_v extort_v such_o a_o confession_n from_o he_o for_o 1._o if_o presbyter_n and_o bishop_n be_v the_o same_o in_o the_o new_a testament_n let_v he_o show_v we_o who_o have_v power_n afterward_o to_o distinguish_v they_o 2._o if_o they_o be_v the_o same_o they_o have_v the_o same_o power_n therefore_o if_o the_o bishop_n have_v power_n to_o ordain_v so_o have_v the_o presbyter_n if_o the_o presbyter_n have_v no_o such_o power_n no_o more_o have_v the_o bishop_n thus_o he_o have_v kind_o establish_v our_o argument_n but_o i_o hope_v his_o episcopal_a friend_n will_v not_o impute_v it_o to_o any_o ill_a design_n in_o he_o for_o he_o be_v full_a of_o good_a will_n to_o their_o cause_n and_o it_o be_v their_o own_o fault_n that_o they_o have_v choose_v no_o better_o a_o advocate_n 3._o but_o he_o hope_v to_o come_v off_o by_o say_v that_o timothy_n and_o titus_n be_v above_o the_o presbyter_n or_o bishop_n for_o hereafter_o you_o must_v take_v they_o for_o one_o and_o the_o same_o timothy_n and_o titus_n evangelist_n be_v above_o the_o bishop_n what_o then_o it_o be_v as_o natural_a to_o infer_v thence_o that_o presbyter_n be_v above_o bishop_n as_o that_o bishop_n be_v above_o presbyter_n not_o only_o evangelist_n but_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n be_v superior_a to_o ordinary_a minister_n but_o no_o example_n have_v be_v yet_o produce_v that_o one_o ordinary_a minister_n be_v superior_a to_o another_o ordinary_a minister_n no_o instance_n can_v be_v give_v in_o the_o new_a testament_n of_o any_o one_o mere_a presbyter_n that_o be_v superior_a to_o another_o presbyter_n if_o there_o must_v be_v some_o church-officer_n call_v bishop_n superior_a to_o presbyter_n because_o evangelist_n be_v so_o by_o the_o same_o reason_n there_o ought_v to_o be_v some_o church-officer_n superior_a to_o bishop_n because_o the_o prophet_n be_v superior_a to_o the_o evangelist_n and_o another_o sort_n of_o church-officer_n superior_a to_o they_o also_o because_o the_o apostle_n be_v superior_a to_o the_o prophet_n he_o subscribe_v to_o j._n oh_o assertion_n 128._o p._n 128._o that_o there_o be_v several_a bishop_n in_o one_o church_n in_o the_o apostle_n day_n and_o that_o those_o mention_v in_o scripture_n be_v not_o of_o our_o english_a species_n therefore_o by_o his_o own_o confession_n english_a bishop_n be_v not_o scripture-bishop_n but_o there_o be_v a_o order_n of_o church-officer_n above_o these_o presbyter-bishop_n say_v he_o as_o we_o have_v demonstrate_v in_o the_o church_n of_o crete_n and_o ephesus_n there_o be_v no_o less_o than_o three_o order_n above_o they_o that_o be_v apostle_n prophet_n and_o evangelist_n each_o of_o they_o extraordinary_a church-officer_n eph._n 4.11_o design_v for_o the_o plant_v of_o the_o christian_a church_n as_o the_o ordinary_a pastora_n and_o teacher_n be_v appoint_v for_o the_o propagate_a of_o it_o unto_o the_o end_n of_o time_n the_o foundation_n be_v to_o be_v lay_v by_o those_o extraordinary_a church-officer_n the_o superstructure_n to_o be_v carry_v on_o according_a to_o the_o platform_n they_o leave_v we_o by_o ordinary_a officer_n j._n o._n prove_v out_o of_o justin_n martyr_n and_o the_o syriac_a version_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n that_o bishop_n and_o presbyter_n be_v the_o same_o in_o the_o age_n after_o the_o apostle_n p._n 13_o 14._o this_o the_o rector_n prudent_o overlook_v he_o thus_o paraphrase_v on_o 1_o tim._n 5.17_o they_o who_o rule_n well_o 129._o p._n 129._o and_o also_o labour_v in_o the_o word_n and_o doctrine_n deserve_v better_o than_o they_o only_a who_o rule_n well_o but_o do_v withal_o labour_n in_o the_o word_n and_o doctrine_n here_o he_o suppose_v that_o some_o in_o the_o church_n may_v rule_v well_o who_o dont_fw-fr labour_n in_o the_o word_n and_o doctrine_n but_o who_o be_v these_o he_o will_v not_o say_v bishop_n for_o then_o the_o presbyter_n who_o rule_v well_o and_o labour_n in_o the_o word_n and_o doctrine_n be_v worthy_a of_o more_o honour_n than_o the_o bishop_n that_o he_o will_v not_o like_a there_o remain_v no_o other_o but_o the_o
to_o he_o because_o the_o apostle_n hid_n he_o be_v instant_a in_o preach_v the_o word_n by_o no_o mean_n say_v mr._n g._n because_o the_o apostle_n direct_v he_o express_o to_o appoint_v other_o teacher_n 2_o tim._n 22._o we_o desire_v to_o see_v some_o like_a passage_n of_o other_o ordainer_n beside_o timothy_n the_o apostle_n or_o rather_o the_o holy_a ghost_n appoint_v several_a bishop_n in_o ephesus_n act_v 20.28_o if_o the_o power_n of_o ordination_n belong_v to_o bishop_n as_o such_o these_o ephesian_a bishop_n be_v ordainer_n it_o be_v a_o old_a and_o a_o true_a maxim_n quatenus_fw-la ad_fw-la omne_fw-la valet_fw-la consequentia_fw-la 2._o but_o lest_o we_o shall_v want_v other_o ordainer_n he_o will_v furnish_v we_o with_o some_o from_o 2_o tim._n 2.2_o which_o though_o his_o argument_n incline_v he_o to_o understand_v it_o of_o teacher_n at_o present_a yet_o in_o another_o mood_n he_o explain_v it_o of_o ordainer_n p._n 53._o j._n o._n prove_v that_o timothy_n can_v not_o receive_v the_o sole_a power_n of_o ordination_n because_o paul_n himself_o take_v in_o the_o presbyter_n 1_o tim._n 4.14_o to_o this_o the_o rector_n say_v it_o be_v something_o to_o the_o purpose_n if_o it_o be_v well_o prove_v 1_o tim._n 4.14_o have_v be_v full_o discuss_v already_o say_v he_o and_o full_o vindicated_n say_v i_o from_o his_o self-contradicting-exception_n j._n o._n give_v another_o reason_n to_o prove_v that_o timothy_n can_v not_o be_v entrust_v with_o the_o sole_a power_n of_o ordination_n because_o paul_n join_v barnabas_n with_o he_o act_v 14.23_o the_o rector_n answer_v the_o mischief_n be_v barnabas_n be_v paul_n be_v equal_a ibid._n ibid._n and_o a_o apostle_n as_o well_o as_o himself_o act_v 14.4.14_o many_o think_v barnabas_n be_v not_o paul_n equal_a that_o he_o be_v proper_o a_o evangelist_n 783._o evangelist_n vid._n sad._n ad_fw-la tur._n soph._n p._n 783._o evangelist_n be_v secondary_a apostle_n apostoli_fw-la vicarii_fw-la as_o some_o call_v they_o they_o seem_v to_o be_v include_v in_o apostle_n 1_o cor._n 12.28_o compare_v with_o eph._n 4.11_o it_o be_v true_a he_o be_v call_v a_o apostle_n act_v 14.4_o 14._o so_o be_v other_o who_o be_v not_o apostle_n in_o a_o strict_a sense_n rom._n 16.7_o 2_o cor._n 8.23_o phil._n 2.25_o 2._o but_o suppose_v he_o be_v a_o apostle_n in_o a_o strict_a sense_n and_o paul_n equal_a j._n oh_o argument_n still_o hold_v good_a if_o paul_n and_o apostle_n join_v barnabas_n with_o he_o another_o apostle_n or_o evangelist_n it_o be_v not_o likely_a that_o timothy_n will_v ordain_v alone_o but_o that_o he_o join_v the_o bishop_n of_o ephesus_n with_o he_o if_o a_o apostle_n will_v not_o lay_v on_o hand_n alone_o much_o less_o will_v a_o evangelist_n it_o be_v but_o j._n oh_o dream_n say_v he_o 134._o p._n 134._o when_o he_o talk_v of_o other_o ordinary_a presbyter_n ordain_v with_o these_o two_o apostle_n i_o desire_v to_o see_v this_o make_v out_o by_o any_o tolerable_a conjecture_n 1._o j._n o._n do_v not_o affirm_v that_o presbyter_n ordain_v with_o paul_n and_o barnabas_n act_v 14.23_o because_o it_o be_v uncertain_a whether_o there_o be_v any_o in_o these_o church_n before_o this_o time_n 2._o but_o if_o there_o be_v any_o it_o be_v probable_a they_o join_v in_o the_o action_n as_o they_o do_v in_o timothy_n ordination_n 1_o tim._n 4.14_o which_o may_v ground_v a_o probable_a conjecture_n paul_n intention_n to_o go_v to_o ephesus_n ibid._n ibid._n 1_o tim._n 3.14_o &_o 4.13_o hinder_v not_o timothy_n from_o be_v the_o resident_n bishop_n there_o as_o he_o think_v 1._o his_o intention_n of_o go_v short_o to_o ephesus_n show_v the_o inconsistency_n of_o mr._n g's_o hypothesis_n for_o he_o tell_v we_o before_o p._n 90._o that_o the_o apostle_n govern_v the_o church_n of_o ephesus_n himself_o by_o the_o presbyter_n in_o his_o absence_n who_o be_v responsible_a to_o he_o this_o continue_a so_o long_o say_v he_o as_o he_o be_v vigorous_a and_o active_a and_o have_v opportunity_n to_o oversee_v both_o the_o flock_n and_o the_o elder_n themselves_o and_o now_o he_o tell_v we_o that_o this_o church_n be_v govern_v by_o a_o bishop_n when_o the_o apostle_n be_v both_o able_a and_o resolve_v to_o oversee_v it_o 2._o he_o tell_v we_o before_o that_o the_o presbyter_n be_v responsible_a to_o paul_n and_o now_o he_o make_v timothy_n responsible_a to_o he_o nothing_o can_v be_v infer_v from_o their_o be_v subject_a to_o paul_n that_o do_v not_o equal_o affect_n timothy_n 3._o if_o paul_n go_v to_o timothy_n do_v not_o hinder_v his_o being_n resident_n at_o ephesus_n i_o hope_v timothy_n go_v to_o paul_n do_v 2_o tim._n 4.21_o except_o the_o rector_n can_v prove_v that_o timothy_n have_v a_o ubiquitarian_a body_n if_o he_o say_v he_o return_v again_o in_o a_o little_a time_n to_o ephesus_n he_o ought_v to_o prove_v it_o which_o he_o can_v never_o do_v from_o the_o write_n of_o the_o apostle_n he_o charge_v j._n o._n with_o foist_v the_o word_n till_o he_o come_v ibid._n ibid._n into_o 1_o tim._n 1.3_o this_o charge_n be_v as_o groundless_a as_o it_o be_v disingenuous_a for_o j._n o._n do_v not_o quote_v thc_a word_n of_o scripture_n but_o give_v the_o meaning_n of_o it_o in_o these_o word_n paul_n do_v not_o enjoin_v timothy_n to_o be_v resident_a at_o ephesus_n but_o beseech_v he_o to_o abide_v there_o till_o he_o come_v 1_o tim._n 1.3_o &_o 4.13_o 14._o which_o he_o intend_v short_o to_o do_v 1_o tim._n 3.14_o 15._o the_o join_v of_o the_o scripture_n together_o and_o the_o explain_n of_o one_o scripture_n by_o another_o will_v be_v allow_v by_o any_o one_o that_o do_v not_o seek_v occasion_n of_o quarrel_v till_o i_o come_v bespeak_v a_o temporary_a stay_n at_o ephesus_n for_o he_o be_v beseech_v by_o paul_n to_o supply_v his_o absence_n there_o when_o the_o apostle_n come_v in_o person_n there_o be_v no_o need_n of_o a_o substitute_n whether_o timothy_n go_v from_o ephesus_n to_o paul_n or_o whether_o paul_n go_v from_o macedonia_n to_o ephesus_n it_o be_v one_o and_o the_o same_o thing_n his_o work_n there_o be_v temporary_a and_o become_v unnecessary_a when_o the_o apostle_n be_v with_o he_o thus_o paul_n send_v he_o not_o long_o before_o this_o to_o macedonia_n and_o sometime_o after_o follow_v he_o thither_o act_v 19.21_o 22._o in_o like_a manner_n he_o design_v to_o follow_v he_o to_o ephesus_n 1_o tim._n 3.14_o the_o rector_n take_v for_o grant_v what_o he_o shall_v have_v prove_v that_o timothy_n be_v oblige_v to_o perpetual_a residence_n at_o ephesus_n which_o have_v not_o be_v yet_o prove_v he_o call_v he_o away_o 2_o tim._n 4.21_o and_o so_o he_o do_v titus_n from_o crete_n tit._n 3.12_o all_o that_o have_v be_v hitherto_o urge_v for_o his_o perpetual_a residence_n at_o ephesus_n be_v that_o in_o 1_o tim._n 1.3_o i_o beseech_v thou_o to_o abide_v still_o at_o ephesus_n these_o word_n do_v not_o look_v like_o the_o installing_n of_o a_o bishop_n in_o his_o diocese_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d signify_v frequent_o a_o short_a abode_n mat._n 15.32_o mark_v 8.2_o timothy_n be_v say_v to_o abide_v still_o at_o athens_n when_o his_o stay_n be_v very_o short_a there_o act_v 17.14_o 15._o he_o call_v upon_o we_o to_o prove_v that_o timothy_n be_v furnish_v with_o the_o same_o power_n at_o corinth_n 135_o p._n 135_o philippi_n thessalonica_n etc._n etc._n i_o will_v prove_v it_o from_o his_o own_o confession_n p._n 130._o the_o unfixed_a evangelist_n govern_v the_o church_n under_o the_o apostle_n and_o ordain_v elder_n for_o they_o thus_o he_o here_o he_o ascribe_v the_o power_n of_o govenirg_n and_o ordain_v unto_o the_o unfixed_a evangelist_n and_o yet_o have_v the_o confidence_n to_o require_v we_o to_o prove_v it_o whereas_o then_o say_v he_o ibid._n ibid._n paul_n beseech_v he_o to_o abide_v and_o reside_v at_o ephesus_n and_o we_o never_o find_v he_o in_o the_o apostle_n company_n again_o nor_o in_o any_o other_o place_n after_o we_o must_v take_v he_o for_o the_o resident_n evangelist_n or_o bishop_n here_o until_o j._n o._n shall_v please_v to_o tell_v we_o out_o of_o sacred_a or_o ecclesiastical_a history_n whither_o he_o remove_v i_o will_v show_v he_o that_o timothy_n be_v in_o paul_n company_n and_o in_o another_o place_n after_o paul_n beseech_v he_o to_o abide_v at_o ephesus_n in_o order_n to_o which_o i_o desire_v he_o to_o grant_v this_o reasonable_a supposition_n viz._n that_o the_o second_o epistle_n to_o he_o be_v write_v after_o the_o first_o in_o the_o first_o epistle_n paul_n say_v he_o beseech_v he_o to_o stay_v at_o ephesus_n 1_o tim._n 1.3_o in_o the_o secod_n epistle_n he_o call_v he_o to_o rome_n 2_o tim._n 4.9_o 21._o doubtless_o he_o go_v thither_o according_a to_o the_o apostle_n order_n and_o we_o find_v he_o there_o with_o the_o apostle_n when_o he_o write_v
with_o judas_n it_o be_v no_o more_o impossible_a say_v he_o that_o timothy_n shall_v leave_v his_o first_o love_n rev._n 2.2_o than_o that_o judas_n the_o apostle_n shall_v betray_v his_o master_n 162._o p._n 162._o we_o must_v not_o think_v but_o that_o some_o of_o the_o apostle_n friend_n and_o disciple_n make_v shipwreck_n of_o the_o faith_n alexander_n do_v so_o act_v 19.33_o and_o why_o not_o timothy_n so_o do_v demas_n the_o apostle_n say_v of_o timothy_n there_o be_v no_o man_n like-minded_n phil._n 2.20_o 22._o and_o that_o there_o be_v prophecy_n concern_v he_o that_o he_o shall_v war_n a_o good_a warfare_n 1_o tim._n 1.18_o can_v any_o such_o thing_n be_v say_v of_o judas_n we_o say_v comparison_n be_v odious_a be_v there_o ever_o a_o more_o odious_a one_o than_o to_o compare_v one_o of_o the_o most_o excellent_a new_a testament_n saint_n with_o the_o vile_a of_o hypocrite_n i_o will_v refer_v he_o to_o his_o own_o word_n if_o it_o be_v not_o offensive_a to_o he_o to_o review_v they_o critic_n will_v be_v busy_a and_o advance_v paradox_n and_o who_o can_v help_v it_o 163._o p._n 163._o timothy_n shall_v be_v a_o apostate-bishop_n rather_o than_o no_o bishop_n but_o he_o think_v to_o mend_v the_o matter_n by_o suppose_v timothy_n may_v be_v dead_a when_o the_o revelation_n be_v write_v because_o he_o be_v a_o infirm_a man_n 1_o tim._n 5.23_o and_o will_v scarce_o live_v to_o seventy_o year_n we_o have_v know_v infirm_a man_n that_o be_v temperate_a to_o live_v above_o seventy_o j._n o._n observe_v that_o many_o chronologer_n affirm_v that_o timothy_n be_v alive_a then_o this_o he_o overlook_v j._n o._n show_v out_o of_o dr._n lightfoot_n that_o the_o angel_n of_o the_o church_n be_v a_o parish-bishop_n in_o conformity_n to_o the_o jewish_a synagogue_n each_o of_o which_o have_v its_o angel_n or_o bishop_n our_o author_n here_o enter_v the_o list_n with_o dr._n lightfoot_n not_o with_o j._n o._n he_o have_v not_o show_v we_o say_v he_o 165._o p._n 164_o 165._o that_o every_o synagogue_n have_v a_o presbytery_n let_v he_o consult_v dr._n lightf_n vol._n 1._o p._n 302._o &_o p._n 611._o &_o vol._n ii_o p._n 133._o but_o the_o ruler_n of_o the_o synagogue_n add_v he_o 165._o p._n 165._o be_v subject_a to_o the_o high-priest_n and_o their_o presbytery_n so_o be_v the_o presbyter_n to_o jesus_n christ_n our_o great_a highpriest_n and_o to_o all_o ruler_n of_o his_o appointment_n he_o tell_v we_o above_o that_o the_o highpriest_n and_o presbytery_n be_v the_o chief_a court_n of_o judicature_n among_o the_o jew_n and_o have_v the_o high_a jurisdiction_n and_o so_o it_o have_v in_o thing_n civil_a and_o sacred_a what_o be_v this_o to_o episcopal_a power_n over_o the_o presbyter_n let_v the_o bishop_n produce_v as_o clear_v a_o charter_n for_o their_o order_n as_o the_o high_a priest_n do_v for_o they_o and_o we_o will_v submit_v he_o remember_v mr._n bois_n scoff_v at_o the_o bishop_n of_o l._n for_o argue_v with_o dr._n lightfoot_n 166._o p._n 166._o but_o do_v not_o refer_v to_o the_o place_n lest_o we_o shall_v see_v what_o great_a reason_n mr._n b._n may_v have_v to_o reject_v rabbinical_a tradition_n and_o what_o little_a reason_n our_o author_n have_v to_o charge_v he_o with_o scoff_v when_o rabbinical_a learning_n be_v of_o any_o advantage_n we_o be_v content_a to_o make_v use_n of_o it_o if_o against_o we_o 167_o p._n 167_o we_o deride_v it_o say_v he_o when_o it_o be_v against_o the_o truth_n we_o reject_v it_o when_o there_o be_v a_o harmony_n between_o it_o and_o the_o new_a testament_n we_o receive_v it_o not_o for_o confirmation_n of_o divine_a truth_n but_o for_o illustration_n mr._n g._n can_v deny_v but_o the_o minister_n of_o every_o synagogue_n be_v call_v the_o angel_n of_o the_o church_n and_o bishop_n of_o the_o congregation_n as_o dr._n lightfoot_n have_v prove_v therefore_o it_o look_v high_o rational_a that_o the_o angel_n of_o the_o asian_a church_n shall_v be_v so_o call_v in_o allusion_n to_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o synagogue_n christian_n oratory_n be_v call_v synagogue_n james_n 2.2_o our_o author_n can_v deny_v the_o agreement_n in_o many_o thing_n between_o both_o but_o say_v he_o the_o temple-worship_n whereof_o a_o great_a deal_n be_v moral_a be_v as_o much_o the_o pattern_n of_o the_o christian_a as_o be_v the_o synagogue-worship_n and_o if_o so_o the_o jewish_a priesthood_n be_v the_o pattern_n of_o the_o christian_a hierarchy_n p._n 166._o 1._o the_o jewish_a priesthood_n be_v appropriate_v to_o the_o ceremonial_a worship_n of_o the_o temple_n though_o they_o perform_v the_o moral_a part_n there_o also_o the_o legal_a priest_n and_o the_o legal_a altar_n be_v relate_v heb._n 7.13_o 14._o and_o both_o be_v abolish_v together_o heb._n 7.12_o for_o the_o priesthood_n be_v change_v there_o be_v make_v of_o necessity_n a_o change_n also_o of_o the_o law_n what_o law_n not_o that_o which_o concern_v the_o moral_a worship_n but_o the_o law_n of_o ceremony_n to_o which_o the_o levitical_a priesthood_n be_v adapt_v 2._o the_o moral_a worship_n in_o the_o synagogue_n may_v be_v perform_v by_o such_o as_o be_v no_o priest_n 135._o priest_n lightf_n vol._n ii_o p._n 133_o 134_o 135._o but_o none_o but_o priest_n give_v attendance_n at_o the_o altar_n heb._n 7.13_o therefore_o the_o ceremonial_a worship_n temple_n and_o priesthood_n be_v abolish_v and_o the_o moral_a worship_n which_o be_v the_o only_a synagogue-worship_n be_v transplant_v into_o the_o christian_a church_n it_o follow_v that_o the_o jewish_a priesthood_n be_v no_o pattern_n of_o the_o gospel-ministry_n but_o this_o have_v be_v consider_v before_o j._n oh_o first_o instance_n of_o ordination_n by_o presbyter_n from_o act_n 13.1_o 2_o 3._o have_v be_v sufficient_o vindicate_v above_o cap._n 2._o he_o be_v in_o one_o of_o his_o hot_a fit_n again_o 168._o p._n 168._o and_o charge_n j._n o._n with_o insufferable_a artifice_n fallacy_n sophistry_n etc._n etc._n for_o say_v that_o if_o barnabas_n be_v one_o of_o the_o seventy_o disciple_n as_o the_o ancient_n affirm_v he_o be_v then_o be_v he_o of_o the_o order_n of_o presbyter_n according_a to_o that_o hypothesis_n that_o make_v bishop_n to_o succeed_v the_o twelve_o apostle_n and_o presbyter_n the_o seventy_o disciple_n j._n o._n do_v not_o call_v barnabas_n a_o presbyter_n but_o argue_v ad_fw-la bominem_fw-la he_o may_v as_o well_o have_v affirm_v say_v he_o that_o mathias_n another_o of_o the_o seventy_o be_v but_o a_o presbyter_n who_o succeed_v judas_n we_o read_v of_o mathias_n his_o solemn_a call_n to_o the_o apostleship_n and_o that_o he_o be_v number_v with_o the_o eleven_o act_v 1.26_o but_o we_o have_v not_o the_o like_a account_n of_o barnabas_n it_o be_v true_a he_o be_v call_v a_o apostle_n act_v 14.4.14_o so_o be_v evangelist_n sometime_o as_o we_o prove_v before_o many_o conceive_v he_o be_v but_o a_o evangelist_n paul_n seem_v to_o own_v no_o apostle_n in_o a_o strict_a sense_n but_o the_o twelve_o and_z himself_o 1_o cor._n 15.5_o 7_o 8._o it_o be_v the_o prerogative_n of_o the_o apostle_n to_o confer_v the_o gift_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n but_o we_o do_v not_o find_v that_o barnabas_n ever_o confer_v that_o gift_n though_o i_o will_v not_o be_v positive_a but_o he_o may_v be_v a_o real_a apostle_n j._n o._n argue_v that_o those_o who_o have_v power_n to_o dispense_v the_o gospel_n to_o baptise_v and_o administer_v the_o lord_n supper_n have_v also_o power_n of_o ordination_n because_o these_o be_v ordinance_n not_o inferior_a to_o ordination_n et_fw-la parium_fw-la par_fw-fr est_fw-la ratio_fw-la they_o be_v not_o inferior_a to_o ordination_n 1._o preach_v the_o gospel_n be_v not_o inferior_a to_o ordination_n the_o publisher_n of_o it_o be_v ambassador_n for_o christ_n 2_o cor._n 5.20_o represent_v the_o great_a prophet_n of_o the_o church_n mat._n 5.20_o be_v worker_n together_o with_o god_n 2_o cor._n 6.1_o and_o be_v a_o ordainer_n morethan_fw-ge this_o baptism_n be_v our_o solemn_a dedication_n to_o god_n ordination_n be_v no_o more_o only_o the_o former_a be_v to_o christianity_n as_o such_o the_o latter_a to_o a_o particular_a work_n 2._o baptism_n be_v a_o sacramental_a dedication_n which_o ordination_n be_v not_o 3._o in_o the_o lord_n supper_n the_o minister_n set_v apart_o bread_n and_o wine_n as_o symbolical_a representation_n of_o jesus_n christ_n jerom_n say_v of_o presbyter_n ad_fw-la quorum_fw-la preces_fw-la corpus_fw-la &_o sanguis_fw-la christi_fw-la consicitur_fw-la now_o which_o be_v great_a to_o impose_v hand_n or_o to_o make_v the_o sacramental_a body_n and_o blood_n of_o jesus_n christ_n if_o they_o have_v power_n to_o consecrate_v holy_a thing_n why_o not_o holy_a person_n also_o thus_o j._n o._n who_o prove_v also_o that_o the_o ministerial_a act_n now_o mention_v be_v not_o inferior_a to_o ordination_n from_o 1_o cor._n 1.17_o mat._n 28.19_o 20._o
41._o in_o another_o place_n reverence_n the_o deacon_n as_o the_o command_n of_o jesus_n christ_n and_o the_o bishop_n as_o jesus_n christ_n and_o the_o presbyter_n as_o the_o council_n of_o god_n and_o the_o conjunction_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o a_o little_a before_o be_v subject_a to_o the_o presbytery_n as_o the_o apostle_n of_o jesus_n christ_n 48._o christ_n ad_fw-la tral_n p._n 48._o he_o speak_v more_o express_o a_o few_o page_n after_o be_v inseparable_o unite_v to_o god_n jesus_n christ_n and_o the_o bishop_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o the_o order_n of_o the_o apostle_n i._n e._n the_o presbyter_n 50._o presbyter_n ibid._n p._n 50._o i_o leave_v it_o to_o the_o impartial_a reader_n be_v judgement_n whether_o all_o these_o expression_n put_v together_o do_v not_o make_v it_o plain_a that_o the_o presbyter_n according_a to_o ignatius_n succeed_v the_o apostle_n can_v any_o thing_n be_v express_v with_o more_o clearness_n they_o preside_v in_o the_o place_n of_o the_o bench_n of_o the_o apostle_n they_o must_v be_v follow_v as_o the_o apostle_n reverence_v as_o the_o conjunction_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o as_o the_o order_n of_o apostle_n but_o our_o author_n proceed_v in_o his_o usual_a and_o proper_a style_n j._n o_o '_o s._n last_v disingenuous_a pervert_v the_o sense_n of_o ignatius_n 178._o p._n 178._o have_v put_v i_o say_v he_o upon_o the_o examination_n of_o his_o testimony_n out_o of_o irenaeus_n for_o i_o must_v confess_v i_o dare_v not_o trust_v he_o in_o any_o thing_n that_o he_o offer_v out_o of_o antiquity_n see_v the_o candour_n of_o this_o gentleman_n he_o decline_v j._n o_n testimony_n out_z of_o antiquity_n and_o yet_o turn_v over_o above_o a_o hundred_o page_n to_o search_v out_o one_o or_o two_o quotation_n that_o he_o may_v cavil_v at_o they_o have_v treat_v j._n o._n with_o such_o scornful_a and_o ill_a language_n so_o often_o in_o his_o book_n it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v expect_v he_o shall_v forbear_v bestow_v upon_o he_o some_o of_o his_o best_a compliment_n now_o at_o part_v and_o he_o be_v the_o more_o oblige_v to_o he_o for_o they_o because_o they_o be_v undeserved_a and_o be_v the_o free_a emanation_n of_o the_o rector_n good_a nature_n his_o attempt_n upon_o ignatius_n fail_v he_o he_o proceed_v to_o j._n oh_o second_o quotation_n out_o of_o irenaeus_n which_o be_v this_o cum_fw-la autem_fw-la ad_fw-la eam_fw-la iterum_fw-la traditionem_fw-la quae_fw-la est_fw-la ab_fw-la apostolis_n quae_fw-la per_fw-la successionem_fw-la presbyteriorum_fw-la in_o ecclesiis_fw-la custoditur_fw-la here_o he_o tax_v j._n o_o be_v sincerity_n for_o a_o literal_a fault_n of_o the_o printer_n 179._o p._n 179._o who_o instead_o of_o presbyterorum_fw-la print_v presbyteriorum_fw-la with_o the_o addition_n of_o the_o letter_n ay_o this_o will_v pass_v for_o a_o venial_a fault_n among_o friend_n but_o mr._n g._n be_v as_o severe_a a_o judge_n as_o he_o be_v a_o corrector_n of_o the_o press_n but_o say_v he_o j._n o._n like_o a_o man_n wise_a in_o his_o generation_n turn_v presbyter_n into_o presbytery_n ibid._n ibid._n that_o this_o place_n may_v be_v understand_v not_o of_o bishop_n but_o of_o the_o college_n of_o presbyter_n but_o irenaeus_n by_o presbyter_n mean_v bishop_n 1._o j._n o._n speak_v of_o presbyter_n not_o presbytery_n succeed_v the_o apostle_n and_o quote_v irenaeus_n for_o proof_n he_o do_v not_o use_v the_o word_n presbytery_n in_o all_o that_o argument_n p._n 179_o 180._o 2._o mr._n g._n can_v deny_v but_o irenaeus_n say_v the_o presbyter_n succeed_v the_o apostle_n but_o he_o think_v by_o presbyter_n he_o mean_v bishop_n we_o think_v so_o too_o and_o thence_o infer_v that_o presbyter_n and_o bishop_n be_v the_o same_o in_o irenaeus_n as_o they_o be_v in_o paul_n epistle_n he_o say_v in_o another_o place_n we_o must_v obey_v those_o presbyter_n that_o be_v in_o the_o church_n who_o receive_v their_o succession_n from_o the_o apostle_n as_o we_o have_v show_v who_o with_o the_o succession_n of_o their_o episcopacy_n have_v receive_v the_o certain_a grace_n of_o truth_n according_a to_o the_o father_n pleasure_n and_o a_o little_a after_o such_o presbyter_n the_o church_n nourish_v of_o who_o the_o prophet_n say_v i_o will_v give_v thou_o ruler_n in_o peace_n and_o bishop_n in_o righteousness_n 44._o righteousness_n iren._n ad_fw-la haeres_fw-la iv_o 43_o 44._o observe_v here_o 1._o that_o presbyter_n succeed_v the_o apostle_n 2._o presbyter_n have_v a_o episcopacy_n 3._o those_o who_o irenaeus_n call_v presbyter_n he_o call_v also_o bishop_n irenaeus_n his_o bishop_n be_v but_o the_o first_o presbyter_n as_o hilarius_n the_o roman_a deacon_n call_v he_o ephes_n he_o int._n ad_fw-la ephes_n by_o those_o first_o presbyter_n who_o for_o order_n sake_n have_v the_o precedency_n of_o the_o rest_n irenaeus_n and_o other_o derive_v the_o succession_n but_o the_o church_n be_v govern_v not_o by_o those_o single_a presbyter_n or_o bishop_n alone_o but_o by_o the_o college_n of_o presbyter_n in_o common_a among_o who_o the_o senior_a presbyter_n or_o the_o most_o worthy_a have_v the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d or_o chief_a seat_n but_o without_o power_n of_o jurisdiction_n over_o his_o brethren_n as_o the_o athenian_n reckon_v the_o year_n in_o which_o the_o archontes_n govern_v their_o republic_n by_o the_o first_o archon_n though_o there_o be_v nine_o of_o they_o in_o all_o and_o the_o lacedaemonian_n denominate_v the_o year_n of_o their_o ephori_fw-la who_o be_v five_o in_o all_o by_o the_o name_n of_o the_o first_o 38._o first_o vid._n blon_n apol._n pref._n p._n 38._o so_o the_o father_n derive_v the_o succession_n of_o presbyter_n by_o the_o first_o and_o chief_a presbyter_n to_o who_o the_o name_n of_o bishop_n by_o degree_n be_v appropriate_v thus_o we_o have_v vindicated_n ignatius_n and_o irenaeus_n against_o the_o angry_a exception_n of_o our_o author_n i_o will_v add_v one_o or_o two_o more_o but_o with_o no_o design_n to_o stir_v up_o his_o choler_n jerom_n say_v of_o they_o they_o the_o clergy_n succeed_v in_o the_o apostolical_a degree_n they_o make_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n with_o their_o sacred_a mouth_n and_o by_o they_o we_o be_v make_v christian_n he_o speak_v not_o of_o bishop_n but_o of_o the_o clerici_fw-la without_o distinction_n even_o of_o all_o that_o administer_v the_o eucharist_n and_o baptise_v and_o a_o little_a after_o express_o name_v the_o presbyter_n the_o presbyter_n say_v he_o may_v deliver_v i_o to_o satan_n if_o i_o offend_v heliodor_n offend_v hieron_n ep._n ad_fw-la heliodor_n origen_n in_o mat._n 16._o make_v all_o presbyter_n to_o succeed_v the_o apostle_n in_o the_o power_n of_o the_o key_n prosper_n make_v all_o holy_a priest_n that_o conscientious_o discharge_v the_o duty_n of_o their_o office_n the_o successor_n of_o the_o apostle_n if_o the_o holy_a priest_n say_v he_o turn_v many_o to_o god_n by_o their_o holy_a live_n and_o preach_v who_o can_v doubt_v such_o to_o be_v partaker_n of_o the_o contemplative_a virtue_n by_o who_o example_n and_o instruction_n many_o be_v make_v heir_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n these_o be_v the_o minister_n of_o the_o word_n the_o hearer_n of_o god_n the_o oracle_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n these_o be_v the_o successor_n of_o the_o apostle_n of_o the_o lord_n 25._o lord_n isti_fw-la sunt_fw-la apostolor_n domini_fw-la successores_fw-la prosp_n de_fw-fr vit._n con._n templ_n i._o 25._o the_o same_o be_v affirm_v by_o ambrose_n 1._o ambrose_n de_fw-fr dign_a sacerdot_n cap._n 1._o clave_n regni_fw-la coelorum_fw-la in_o beato_fw-la petro_n apostolo_n cuncti_fw-la suscepimus_fw-la sacerdotes_fw-la cyprian_a also_o speak_v to_o the_o same_o purpose_n christ_n say_v to_o the_o apostle_n and_o to_o all_o ecclesiastical_a ruler_n who_o by_o a_o depute_a ordination_n succeed_v the_o apostle_n he_o that_o hear_v you_o hear_v i_o and_o he_o that_o hear_v i_o hear_v he_o that_o send_v i_o lxix_o i_o dicit_fw-la ad_fw-la omnes_fw-la praepositos_fw-la qui_fw-la apostolis_n vicaria_fw-la ordinatione_fw-la succedunt_fw-la ep._n lxix_o i_o do_v not_o deny_v but_o cyprian_n call_v the_o bishop_n praepositi_fw-la church-ruler_n and_o speak_v here_o of_o himself_o who_o be_v a_o bishop_n but_o the_o word_n be_v general_a and_o must_v include_v the_o presbyter_n also_o 1._o because_o he_o say_v all_o the_o praepositi_fw-la succeed_v the_o apostle_n the_o presbyter_n as_o well_o as_o the_o bishop_n be_v the_o praepositi_fw-la in_o cyprian_a so_o he_o call_v they_o the_o lord_n choose_v the_o apostle_n that_o be_v the_o bishop_n and_o praepositos_fw-la xv._o praepositos_fw-la ep_a i._n xv._o ruler_n here_o cyprian_n call_v the_o presbyter_n praepositos_fw-la and_o he_o make_v the_o bishop_n and_o the_o praepositi_fw-la equal_o to_o succeed_v the_o apostle_n 2._o he_o say_v all_o the_o praepositi_fw-la succeed_v the_o apostle_n to_o who_o christ_n say_v he_o that_o hear_v you_o hear_v me._n now_o these_o word_n of_o christ_n belong_v to_o the_o presbyter_n as_o much_o as_o to_o the_o bishop_n he_o that_o hear_v they_o hear_v christ_n therefore_o these_o word_n be_v speak_v to_o they_o also_o as_o the_o apostle_n successor_n according_a to_o cyprian_a and_o this_o be_v agreeable_a to_o the_o 1_o pet._n 5.1_o where_o the_o apostle_n peter_n write_v to_o to_o presbyter_n call_v himself_o a_o presbyter_n have_v the_o apostle_n write_v thus_o the_o bishop_n which_o be_v among_o you_o i_o exhort_v who_o be_o also_o a_o bishop_n this_o will_v have_v be_v cry_v up_o for_o a_o invincible_a argument_n to_o prove_v that_o bishop_n be_v the_o apostle_n successor_n for_o he_o write_v to_o bishop_n and_o call_v himself_o a_o bishop_n the_o argument_n be_v we_o to_o prove_v that_o presbyter_n succeed_v the_o apostle_n who_o style_v themselves_o presbyter_n in_o the_o ordinary_a part_n of_o their_o office_n we_o do_v not_o deny_v but_o the_o bishop_n succeed_v the_o apostle_n but_o as_o presbyter_n and_o not_o as_o a_o order_n of_o church-officer_n superior_a to_o presbyter_n and_o therefore_o irenaeus_n as_o we_o observe_v before_o say_v the_o presbyter_n succeed_v the_o apostle_n make_v presbyter_n and_o bishop_n to_o be_v the_o same_o according_a to_o the_o holy_a scripture_n i_o have_v already_o prove_v that_o the_o presbyter_n of_o ephesus_n succeed_v the_o apostle_n in_o the_o government_n of_o that_o church_n timothy_n be_v leave_v there_o in_o paul_n absence_n when_o he_o intend_v to_o come_v to_o ephesus_n himself_o short_o 1_o tim._n 3.14_o &_o 4.13_o the_o presbyter_n be_v entrust_v with_o the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n when_o he_o have_v no_o thought_n of_o see_v they_o again_o act_v 20.25.38_o timothy_n a_o evangelist_n be_v to_o supply_v the_o temporary_a absence_n of_o paul_n from_o that_o church_n the_o presbyter_n his_o perpetual_a absence_n and_o therefore_o be_v proper_o his_o successor_n in_o the_o government_n of_o that_o church_n finis_fw-la